Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n lord_n sceptre_n 2,040 5 10.9794 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A25395 The morall law expounded ... that is, the long-expected, and much-desired worke of Bishop Andrewes upon the Ten commandments : being his lectures many yeares since in Pembroch-Hall Chappell, in Cambridge ... : whereunto is annexed nineteene sermons of his, upon prayer in generall, and upon the Lords prayer in particular : also seven sermons upon our Saviors tentations [sic] in the wildernesse. ... Andrewes, Lancelot, 1555-1626. 1642 (1642) Wing A3140; ESTC R9005 912,723 784

There are 25 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

petition_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o second_o the_o come_v of_o his_o kingdom_n touch_v the_o first_o point_n it_o may_v be_v object_v how_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n teach_v we_o to_o make_v this_o petition_n for_o god_n kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o his_o dominion_n endure_v throughout_o all_o age_n psal_n 145.13_o how_o then_o be_v it_o say_v to_o come_v for_o the_o answer_n of_o this_o doubt_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n must_v be_v distinguish_v first_o god_n have_v a_o universal_a kingdom_n such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o ever_o be_v and_o for_o ever_o shall_v be_v of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v king_n be_v the_o people_n never_o so_o impotent_a he_o rule_v as_o king_n be_v the_o people_n never_o so_o unquiet_a psal_n 99_o second_o there_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n that_o whereof_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matth._n 25.34_o come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n say_v lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n luke_n 13._o and_o this_o be_v the_o kingdom_n which_o in_o the_o first_o place_n christ_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o we_o pray_v for_o this_o kingdom_n that_o it_o may_v come_v we_o pray_v for_o our_o own_o good_a for_o it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o power_n and_o therefore_o able_a to_o defend_v we_o and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o prayer_n add_v this_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n matth._n 6._o according_a to_o which_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v thy_o saint_n give_v thanks_n to_o thou_o they_o show_v the_o glory_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o talk_v of_o thy_o power_n psal_n 145.11_o the_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v commit_v to_o christ_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v by_o god_n i_o have_v set_v my_o king_n upon_o my_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n psal_n 2._o in_o which_o regard_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v of_o himself_o matth._n 28_o data_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o power_n be_v give_v ●e_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o notwithstanding_o god_n reign_v as_o king_n yet_o that_o be_v verify_v which_o the_o prophet_n complain_v of_o isa_n 26.13_o o_o lord_n god_n other_o god_n beside_o thou_o have_v rule_v over_o we_o for_o satan_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v king_n and_o have_v play_v the_o tyrant_n and_o have_v prevail_v so_o far_o as_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v subdue_v unto_o he_o in_o which_o regard_n our_o saviour_n call_v he_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n john_n 14.30_o and_o by_o the_o apostle_n he_o be_v term_v the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n for_o that_o he_o blind_v man_n eye_n and_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n 2_o cor._n 4._o second_o there_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n against_o which_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v let_v not_o sin_n reign_v in_o your_o mortal_a body_n rom_n 6_o ●2_n which_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v that_o sin_n have_v reign_v unto_o ●●●ath_n rom_n 5.21_o three_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o death_n have_v a_o kingdom_n when_o he_o say_v that_o by_o mean_n of_o sin_n death_n reign_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n rom._n 5.14_o these_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o while_o the_o devil_n reighn_v by_o mean_n of_o sin_n as_o he_o do_v so_o long_o as_o he_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n ephes_n 4._o he_o take_v away_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n kingdom_n and_o death_n take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o it_o and_o in_o regard_n of_o satan_n kingdom_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o king_n over_o all_o the_o child_n of_o pride_n job_n 41.34_o for_o he_o make_v the_o whole_a world_n rebel_v against_o god_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o deny_v he_o to_o his_o face_n and_o that_o be_v true_a not_o only_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o the_o world_n but_o even_o of_o a_o great_a many_o of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o number_n be_v those_o that_o stick_v not_o to_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n to_o rule_v over_o we_o luke_n 19.14_o again_o there_o be_v many_o stumble_a block_n for_o the_o hindrance_n of_o god_n kingdom_n matth._n 13.41_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n can_v come_v and_o therefore_o we_o do_v worthy_o pray_v as_o well_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o sin_n may_v be_v overthrow_v as_o for_o the_o remove_n of_o those_o offence_n god_n have_v exalt_v his_o son_n into_o the_o high_a heaven_n say_v unto_o he_o sit_v thou_o at_o my_o right_a hand_n till_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n psal_n 110._o the_o last_o enemy_n that_o be_v to_o be_v destroy_v be_v death_n 1_o cor._n 15.16_o wherefore_o our_o desire_n be_v that_o there_o may_v be_v such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o wherein_o the_o law_n of_o god_n may_v be_v exact_o keep_v and_o that_o it_o will_v please_v god_n in_o this_o kingdom_n to_o tread_v down_o satan_n under_o our_o foot_n rom._n 16._o that_o not_o only_a death_n itself_o but_o he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n be_v destroy_v heb._n 2.14_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o 1_o cor._n 15.28_o when_o we_o behold_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n and_o see_v that_o good_a man_n be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o sin_n be_v exalt_v and_o prosper_v than_o we_o may_v know_v that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o true_a kingdom_n and_o therefore_o we_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v set_v up_o his_o kingdom_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o this_o point_n do_v not_o only_o concern_v ourselves_o but_o also_o god_n for_o unless_o his_o kingdom_n come_v his_o name_n can_v be_v sanctify_v of_o we_o as_o there_o be_v temporal_a kingdom_n so_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n whereof_o our_o saviour_n speak_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o luke_n 17.21_o as_o before_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n so_o now_o for_o this_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n for_o without_o this_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o other_o kingdom_n the_o glory_n of_o other_o kingdom_n be_v the_o reformation_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o amiss_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n be_v that_o as_o during_o the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n sin_n reign_v unto_o death_n so_o now_o under_o this_o kingdom_n grace_n may_v reign_v through_o righteousness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n rom._n 5.21_o that_o we_o may_v have_v interest_n in_o both_o these_o kingdom_n we_o must_v hearken_v to_o that_o which_o christ_n proclaim_v matth._n 4.27_o repent_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n draw_v near_o as_o it_o draw_v near_o to_o we_o so_o we_o must_v draw_v near_o to_o it_o else_o we_o shall_v never_o enter_v into_o it_o for_z except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n john_n 3.2_o and_o that_o we_o may_v begin_v to_o draw_v near_o to_o it_o there_o be_v a_o outward_a regiment_n to_o be_v use_v which_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bear_v rule_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o must_v by_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n within_o we_o cast_v out_o devil_n matth._n 8._o we_o must_v entreat_v god_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o plant_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o to_o root_v out_o and_o remove_v out_o of_o they_o that_o which_o be_v bad_a matth._n 13.48_o we_o must_v displace_v satan_n and_o sin_n that_o they_o set_v not_o up_o their_o throne_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o it_o we_o must_v set_v up_o god_n kingdom_n rule_v in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n stand_v in_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 14.17_o if_o we_o find_v these_o virtue_n in_o we_o they_o be_v sure_a pledge_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v we_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n and_o how_o soever_o he_o have_v appoint_v king_n and_o ruler_n over_o we_o for_o our_o outward_a safety_n and_o defence_n yet_o they_o have_v their_o sceptre_n from_o he_o and_o the_o end_n of_o their_o rule_n be_v to_o further_a god_n kingdom_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v that_o we_o may_v live_v under_o they_o in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n 1_o tim._n 2._o touch_v the_o come_n of_o his_o kingdom_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o we_o pray_v that_o it_o may_v come_v to_o we_o see_v that_o
repentance_n the_o person_n to_o be_v deliver_v be_v express_v in_o the_o word_n nos_fw-la which_o impli_v a_o twofold_a reason_n the_o one_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o word_n libera_fw-la we_o be_v thy_o servant_n therefore_o make_v we_o free_a and_o suffer_v we_o not_o to_o be_v slave_n to_o satan_n so_o the_o prophet_n reason_v psal_n 116._o &_o 143._o second_o again_o deliver_v we_o for_o we_o be_v thy_o child_n those_o who_o thou_o have_v teach_v to_o call_v thou_o father_n therefore_o though_o we_o be_v mephibosheth_n for_o our_o deformity_n and_o absalon_n for_o our_o ungraciousnesse_n yet_o show_v thyself_o a_o father_n to_o we_o and_o of_o servant_n though_o we_o be_v not_o only_o unprofitable_a luk._n 17._o but_o evil_a and_o wasteful_a luk._n 16._o yet_o because_o we_o be_v thy_o servant_n deliver_v we_o three_o we_o be_v thy_o workmanship_n therefore_o despise_v not_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o own_o hand_n psal_n 138._o four_o we_o be_v thy_o image_n gen._n 1._o five_o the_o price_n of_o thy_o son_n blood_n six_o vessel_n to_o carry_v thy_o name_n we_o be_v they_o upon_o who_o thy_o name_n be_v call_v therefore_o deliver_v we_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v a_o reproach_n to_o they_o that_o be_v about_o we_o dan._n 9.18_o seven_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o thy_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o saviour_n our_o head_n rom._n 12.5_o eph._n 1.22_o the_o other_o reason_n be_v from_o the_o word_n mala_fw-la the_o devil_n as_o he_o be_v our_o enemy_n so_o he_o be_v god_n and_o he_o hate_v we_o because_o we_o be_v thou_o and_o therefore_o labour_v to_o draw_v we_o from_o thou_o but_o save_v thou_o we_o that_o we_o fall_v not_o from_o thou_o as_o he_o have_v do_v last_o we_o for_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o ourselves_o alone_o but_o for_o our_o brethren_n also_o that_o god_n will_v be_v good_a to_o they_o likewise_o and_o though_o we_o be_v out_o of_o trouble_n yet_o because_o we_o be_v of_o the_o body_n we_o may_v true_o say_v deliver_v we_o when_o we_o pray_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o brethren_n that_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n until_o the_o last_o enemy_n death_n be_v destroy_v 1_o cor._n 15.26_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v full_o free_v but_o have_v one_o evil_a or_o other_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o that_o time_n when_o we_o shall_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n no_o more_o when_o god_n shall_v wipe_v all_o tear_n from_o our_o eye_n rev._n 7.16_o at_o the_o least_o if_o he_o take_v we_o not_o present_o out_o of_o the_o world_n yet_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o world_n joh._n 17.15_o till_o that_o day_n when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n nor_o sorrow_n nor_o cry_v nor_o pain_n rev._n 21.4_o but_o god_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o to_o we_o for_o ever_o the_o eighteen_o sermon_n for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o saint_n paul_n will_v that_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n be_v do_v orderly_o 1_o cor._n 14._o which_o no_o doubt_n he_o take_v from_o christ_n who_o answer_n to_o john_n baptist_n matth._n 3.14_o be_v sic_fw-la enim_fw-la decet_fw-la for_o so_o it_o become_v whereby_o we_o see_v that_o both_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v always_o observe_v a_o decorum_n or_o decency_n in_o all_o thing_n so_o touch_v prayer_n our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o undecent_a thing_n for_o any_o have_v do_v his_o petition_n to_o break_v off_o sudden_o or_o to_o begin_v his_o prayer_n without_o any_o introduction_n have_v not_o only_o make_v a_o entrance_n to_o his_o prayer_n wherein_o he_o acknowledge_v god_n goodness_n but_o also_o add_v a_o conclusion_n wherein_o he_o confess_v his_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n which_o the_o father_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o take_v the_o pattern_n of_o this_o conclusion_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o king_n david_n acknowledge_v thy_o o_o lord_n be_v greatness_n power_n and_o glory_n and_o victory_n and_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n 1_o chron._n 29.11_o in_o the_o beginning_n we_o hear_v that_o all_o prayer_n and_o invocation_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o testimony_n and_o confession_n the_o petition_n that_o be_v several_o make_v in_o this_o prayer_n be_v confession_n of_o our_o weakness_n want_n need_v and_o unablenesse_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v please_v god_n the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o it_o be_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o god_n riches_n power_n and_o goodness_n whereby_o he_o be_v incline_v to_o supply_v our_o want_n for_o that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o willing_a as_o a_o father_n but_o able_a as_o a_o king_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o prayer_n we_o make_v whether_o tekinnah_n or_o tehillah_n whether_o we_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v receive_v some_o good_a thing_n of_o god_n or_o praise_v he_o for_o good_a receive_v be_v a_o confession_n and_o both_o these_o confession_n make_v for_o god_n glory_n not_o only_o to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o make_v confession_n of_o his_o sin_n it_o be_v say_v dam_fw-la gloriam_fw-la deo_fw-la josh_n 7.19_o but_o the_o blind_a man_n that_o have_v receive_v a_o benefit_n by_o the_o recovery_n of_o his_o sight_n be_v say_v to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n joh._n 19.24_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o prayer_n be_v a_o confession_n of_o god_n goodness_n the_o end_n of_o his_o power_n for_o unto_o do_v of_o good_a be_v require_v not_o only_a willingness_n but_o power_n and_o ability_n to_o show_v that_o god_n be_v willing_a we_o be_v teach_v to_o call_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o father_n for_o any_o father_n be_v willing_a to_o do_v his_o child_n good_a but_o with_o this_o willingness_n there_o must_v concur_v a_o ability_n to_o do_v good_a which_o howsoever_o it_o be_v want_v in_o earthly_a father_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o want_v in_o our_o heavenly_a father_n for_o whereas_o nothing_o do_v more_o express_a power_n than_o the_o name_n of_o a_o king_n christ_n acknowledge_v god_n to_o be_v such_o a_o father_n as_o have_v kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n and_o therefore_o be_v able_a to_o do_v we_o whatsoever_o good_a he_o will_n so_o god_n himself_o affirm_v of_o himself_o i_o be_o a_o great_a king_n mal._n 1.14_o rev._n 19.16_o he_o be_v call_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n so_o that_o if_o we_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n the_o father_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o conceive_v hope_n that_o he_o will_v hear_v our_o petition_n and_o help_v we_o because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o willing_a as_o a_o father_n but_o able_a as_o a_o mighty_a glorious_a and_o powerful_a prince_n second_o if_o to_o god_n the_o son_n his_o die_a for_o we_o do_v assure_v we_o of_o his_o good_a will_n and_o readiness_n to_o do_v we_o good_a and_o his_o rise_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a when_o he_o have_v break_v the_o iron_n bar_n do_v assure_v we_o of_o his_o power_n three_o if_o to_o the_o holy_a ghast_a we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o doubt_v of_o his_o willingness_n for_o he_o be_v the_o essential_a love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v shed_v in_o our_o heart_n rom._n 5._o beside_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n operative_a by_o who_o god_n work_v all_o good_a thing_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o therefore_o able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o good_a for_o we_o and_o those_o two_o to_o wit_n the_o assurance_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o power_n be_v the_o two_o part_n of_o the_o anchor_n of_o our_o hope_n heb._n 6.18_o 19_o and_o he_o give_v we_o not_o only_a audaciam_fw-la petendi_fw-la but_o also_o fiduciam_fw-la impetrandi_fw-la not_o only_a boldness_n to_o ask_v but_o also_o assurance_n to_o obtain_v the_o make_v request_n in_o our_o own_o behalf_n and_o acknowledgement_n to_o god_n of_o his_o love_n and_o power_n be_v both_o confession_n but_o the_o principal_n be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o gooodnesse_n and_o kingdom_n &_o power_n for_o to_o make_v request_n to_o god_n for_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o want_v concern_v man_n but_o to_o confess_v god_n power_n and_o goodness_n be_v that_o wherein_o the_o heavenly_a angel_n be_v occupy_v in_o they_o feel_v no_o want_n of_o any_o good_a thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o ne●d_n to_o make_v petition_n to_o god_n as_o we_o on_o earth_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o confession_n that_o they_o make_v be_v of_o god_n goodness_n and_o power_n whereof_o they_o cry_v continual_o holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n of_o host_n the_o earth_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n esay_n 6.3_o the_o same_o be_v do_v by_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n blessing_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thanks_o and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o might_n be_v unto_o our_o god_n for_o evermore_o rev._n 7.12_o whereby_o we_o learn_v that_o we_o
act._n 20._o he_o say_v he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o we_o his_o people_n levit._n 26._o he_o will_v be_v our_o father_n and_o we_o his_o child_n 2_o cor._n 6._o he_o our_o lord_n and_o we_o his_o servant_n therefore_o we_o may_v challenge_v at_o his_o hand_n that_o favour_n which_o king_n vouchsafe_v to_o their_o subject_n which_o father_n show_v to_o their_o child_n that_o be_v to_o love_v they_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o to_o wish_v they_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n they_o need_v if_o he_o have_v purchase_v we_o to_o himself_o by_o his_o blood_n than_o we_o pertain_v to_o he_o and_o we_o may_v say_v to_o he_o as_o his_o disciple_n say_v to_o christ_n mark_n 4.38_o care_v thou_o not_o for_o we_o that_o pertain_v to_o thou_o but_o suffer_v we_o to_o perish_v these_o word_n kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n be_v joint_o consider_v be_v a_o representation_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o moses_n speak_v of_o the_o author_n of_o our_o creation_n reckon_v up_o the_o name_n of_o god_n three_o time_n gen._n 1.27_o as_o in_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o law_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v there_o repeat_v numb_a 6.6_o and_o as_o the_o angel_n cry_v there_o holy_a holy_a holy_a esay_n 6._o to_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n which_o the_o heathen_a themselves_o have_v compass_v so_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v by_o these_o word_n kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n signify_v those_o three_o person_n which_o afterward_o he_o express_v by_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 28._o if_o we_o consider_v they_o several_o although_o they_o may_v all_o be_v ascribe_v to_o any_o person_n of_o the_o deity_n yet_o the_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 15.35_o power_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 15.13.19_o and_o glory_n to_o the_o father_n rom._n 6.4_o that_o we_o set_v ourselves_o in_o christ_n kingdom_n that_o be_v his_o church_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o god_n the_o father_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o again_o these_o word_n be_v set_v to_o distinguish_v god_n kingdom_n from_o earthly_a kingdom_n each_o king_n have_v not_o power_n as_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n say_v if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o succour_v thou_o how_o can_v i_o help_v thou_o 2_o reg._n 6.21_o but_o god_n kingdom_n be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o power_n second_o there_o be_v kingdom_n of_o may_v but_o not_o of_o glory_n such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n he_o have_v a_o kingdom_n of_o may_v but_o not_o of_o glory_n for_o he_o spend_v all_o his_o time_n in_o trouble_n but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o solomon_n his_o son_n be_v both_o a_o powerful_a and_o a_o glorious_a kingdom_n and_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o perfect_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o these_o word_n that_o as_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o lord_n so_o he_o have_v not_o only_o a_o kingdom_n of_o power_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v but_o of_o glory_n whereby_o he_o can_v also_o reward_v his_o servant_n and_o subject_n moses_n desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v show_v he_o his_o glory_n exod._n 33._o but_o he_o that_o be_v of_o christ_n kingdom_n shall_v see_v the_o glory_n which_o christ_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n with_o the_o father_n joh._n 17.21_o to_o consider_v these_o word_n several_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n knit_v my_o heart_n unto_o thou_o psalm_n 86._o one_o say_v religio_fw-la dicitur_fw-la à_fw-la religando_fw-la as_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a bond_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n so_o be_v there_o between_o god_n and_o we_o the_o king_n duty_n be_v to_o defend_v his_o subject_n from_o injury_n and_o wrong_n and_o to_o bestow_v on_o they_o all_o manner_n of_o benefit_n the_o duty_n of_o subject_n be_v to_o be_v dutiful_a and_o yield_v all_o ready_a service_n to_o their_o prince_n so_o god_n for_o his_o part_n be_v ready_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v we_o from_o all_o danger_n but_o to_o bestow_v all_o good_a thing_n upon_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v religious_a and_o dutiful_a to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o king_n and_o sovereign_a we_o must_v not_o only_o love_v he_o as_o a_o father_n but_o fear_v he_o as_o our_o lord_n and_o king_n matth._n 1.6_o and_o this_o mixture_n shall_v keep_v we_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n we_o shall_v neither_o too_o much_o despair_n nor_o presume_v of_o his_o goodness_n this_o fear_n we_o must_v testify_v both_o by_o a_o reverend_a regard_n of_o his_o law_n and_o of_o his_o officer_n he_o be_v no_o good_a subject_n that_o rebell_v against_o the_o law_n of_o his_o prince_n no_o more_o be_v we_o when_o no_o more_o can_v be_v get_v at_o our_o hand_n but_o by_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n esay_n 29._o when_o the_o statute_n of_o omri_n be_v keep_v for_o fear_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n mich._n 6._o and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v have_v in_o no_o price_n than_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o be_v not_o so_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a to_o our_o heavenly_a prince_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v second_o we_o must_v testify_v our_o fear_n of_o god_n by_o a_o reverend_a regard_n of_o his_o prophet_n and_o priest_n which_o be_v the_o minister_n and_o officer_n in_o his_o kingdom_n when_o the_o jew_n mock_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o misuse_v his_o prophet_n they_o show_v their_o contempt_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n arise_v against_o that_o people_n 2_o chron._n 36.16_o contrariwise_o if_o we_o have_v a_o honourable_a conceit_n of_o they_o and_o receive_v they_o as_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n gal._n 4._o then_o we_o show_v ourselves_o to_o be_v dutiful_a vassal_n to_o our_o heavenly_a lord_n and_o king_n next_o for_o power_n as_o s._n peter_n say_v god_n be_v able_a both_o to_o respect_v the_o righteous_a and_o to_o show_v vengeance_n upon_o the_o wicked_a 2_o pet._n 2.9_o so_o whether_o we_o respect_v the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n inward_a whereby_o he_o work_v all_o good_a thing_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n or_o the_o outward_a power_n whereby_o he_o defend_v they_o from_o evil_a whether_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n or_o of_o his_o right_a hand_n we_o must_v confess_v with_o the_o saint_n that_o all_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o might_n belong_v to_o god_n rev._n 7._o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o power_n we_o have_v whether_o inward_a or_o outward_a we_o must_v employ_v it_o all_o in_o his_o service_n fortitudinem_fw-la meam_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la servo_fw-la i_o will_v keep_v my_o strength_n or_o reserve_v it_o unto_o thou_o psal_n 59.9_o so_o we_o must_v not_o spend_v our_o strength_n in_o thought_n of_o vanity_n but_o employ_v it_o to_o his_o use_n and_o to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o his_o glory_n to_o who_o only_o all_o power_n belong_v three_o christ_n teach_v we_o to_o ascribe_v all_o glory_n to_o god_n that_o whatsoever_o praise_n or_o commendation_n do_v come_v unto_o we_o by_o any_o thing_n we_o do_v we_o shall_v make_v a_o surrender_n of_o it_o to_o god_n to_o who_o all_o glory_n be_v due_a and_o say_v with_o the_o church_n non_fw-la nobis_fw-la domine_fw-la etc._n etc._n not_o unto_o we_o o_o lord_n not_o unto_o we_o but_o to_o thy_o name_n give_v all_o glory_n psal_n 115._o for_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o place_n wherein_o the_o voice_n of_o gladness_n be_v hear_v and_o the_o voice_n of_o they_o that_o sing_v praise_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n for_o he_o be_v love_v and_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o jer._n 33.11_o the_o faithful_a be_v teach_v to_o return_v all_o glory_n to_o god_n which_o be_v give_v to_o they_o god_n himself_o say_v gloriam_fw-la meam_fw-la alteri_fw-la non_fw-la daho_fw-la esay_n 42._o if_o he_o give_v his_o glory_n to_o any_o other_o it_o be_v to_o such_o as_o deserve_v it_o and_o have_v all_o power_n of_o themselves_o but_o there_o be_v no_o creature_n which_o have_v any_o power_n but_o what_o be_v give_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o god_n do_v by_o right_a reserve_v his_o glory_n to_o himself_o and_o we_o ought_v willing_o yield_v all_o glory_n to_o he_o alone_o because_o he_o promise_v they_o that_o honour_v i_o i_o will_v honour_v 1_o sam._n 2._o that_o we_o glorify_v he_o here_o with_o a_o verbal_a glory_n we_o may_v be_v glorify_v of_o he_o with_o a_o real_a glory_n when_o he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n 2_o thess_n 1.12_o and_o with_o a_o exceed_a weight_n of_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 4._o but_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o full_o see_v wherein_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o god_n differ_v from_o the_o
kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n for_o both_o power_n and_o glory_n may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o a_o earthly_a prince_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o solomon_n have_v they_o all_o and_o therefore_o as_o he_o be_v distinguish_v from_o earthly_a father_n for_o that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n so_o he_o differ_v from_o earthly_a king_n in_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o endure_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o there_o be_v another_o difference_n employ_v in_o the_o article_n earthly_a prince_n have_v a_o kingdom_n a_o kingdom_n of_o power_n and_o a_o certain_a glory_n in_o this_o world_n but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o kingdom_n this_o prepositive_a article_n import_v two_o thing_n a_o generality_n and_o a_o superiority_n for_o the_o first_o point_n he_o that_o have_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o bear_v rule_n in_o be_v not_o a_o universal_a king_n but_o god_n be_v king_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n psal_n 47._o therefore_o if_o we_o be_v so_o careful_a to_o behave_v ourselves_o aright_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o earthly_a king_n who_o kingdom_n be_v limit_v within_o certain_a bound_n which_o if_o he_o exceed_v he_o be_v no_o more_o king_n much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o praise_n and_o glorify_v he_o who_o kingdom_n be_v universal_a second_o for_o the_o superiority_n of_o god_n kingdom_n there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o king_n on_o earth_n but_o of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o be_v say_v all_o king_n shall_v fall_v down_o before_o he_o all_o nation_n shall_v worship_v he_o psalm_n 72._o for_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n rev._n 19_o touch_v the_o other_o difference_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n for_o ever_o though_o a_o man_n have_v all_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o kingdom_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o no_o prince_n ever_o reign_v the_o whole_a age_n of_o a_o man_n and_o so_o long_a time_n as_o a_o man_n natural_o may_v live_v which_o the_o philosopher_n say_v be_v the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n but_o his_o kingdom_n endure_v not_o only_o the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n but_o in_o seculum_fw-la for_o ever_o thy_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o whereas_o man_n kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n last_v but_o a_o few_o year_n and_o sometime_o but_o a_o few_o day_n jezabel_n have_v a_o glorious_a kingdom_n but_o within_o a_o few_o year_n it_o be_v say_v of_o she_o ubi_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la jezabel_n 2_o reg._n 10._o when_o it_o be_v fulfil_v which_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n foretell_v 13.28_o tell_v the_o king_n and_o queen_n humble_v yourselves_o for_o your_o dignity_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o crown_n of_o your_o glory_n shall_v fall_v down_o and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o greatness_n of_o all_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o therefore_o christ_n teach_v we_o to_o direct_v our_o petition_n to_o he_o who_o kingdom_n be_v everlasting_a psalm_n 145._o who_o power_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o not_o to_o a_o mortal_a king_n but_o to_o god_n qui_fw-la solus_fw-la habet_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o only_o have_v immortality_n 1_o tim._n 6._o who_o being_n himself_o a_o everlasting_a king_n and_o incorruptible_a be_v able_a to_o bestow_v upon_o we_o both_o a_o crown_n 1_o pet._n 5._o and_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o 1_o pet._n 1.4_o this_o be_v our_o hope_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o desire_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o creed_n have_v his_o period_n in_o life_n everlasting_a so_o last_o of_o all_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v for_o glory_n everlasting_a the_o nineteenth_o sermon_n amen_n we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n whereof_o at_o this_o time_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v for_o there_o be_v in_o it_o every_o way_n matter_n worthy_a of_o our_o consideration_n and_o we_o can_v perfect_o accomplish_v our_o duty_n in_o prayer_n except_o we_o understand_v this_o word_n aright_o for_o after_o we_o have_v lay_v out_o our_o several_a petition_n to_o god_n and_o make_v our_o allegation_n to_o god_n why_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v respect_v by_o he_o namely_o because_o we_o be_v of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o jurisdiction_n for_o that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n of_o ourselves_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n last_o because_o that_o we_o confess_v that_o all_o glory_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o than_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o those_o petition_n and_o allegation_n make_v by_o we_o may_v by_o he_o be_v ratify_v which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o word_n amen_o wherein_o the_o ancient_a writer_n consider_v two_o thing_n first_o jerome_n say_v it_o be_v signaculum_fw-la consensus_fw-la nostri_fw-la that_o by_o it_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o whatsoever_o we_o can_v desire_v be_v contain_v in_o this_o form_n of_o prayer_n second_o as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v it_o be_v votum_fw-la desiderii_fw-la nostri_fw-la that_o as_o we_o allow_v of_o this_o form_n of_o prayer_n and_o the_o petition_n make_v therein_o so_o we_o desire_v that_o it_o will_v please_v god_n to_o perform_v and_o accomplish_v they_o so_o in_o this_o word_n be_v employ_v the_o consent_n of_o our_o mind_n to_o allow_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v for_o in_o this_o prayer_n and_o second_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o same_o the_o one_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o as_o much_o as_o we_o acknowledge_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a the_o other_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o our_o love_n whereby_o we_o testify_v our_o desire_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o these_o petition_n the_o one_o be_v refer_v to_o truth_n the_o other_o to_o the_o fervency_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o which_o two_o thing_n as_o our_o saviour_n affirm_v joh._n 4.24_o the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n consist_v concern_v which_o word_n to_o be_v add_v in_o the_o end_n of_o our_o supplication_n there_o be_v a_o absolute_a commandment_n not_o only_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n let_v all_o the_o people_n say_v amen_o 1_o chron._n 16.33_o ps_n 106._o but_o in_o the_o new_a as_o appear_v by_o s._n paul_n question_n 1_o cor._n 14.16_o who_o to_o show_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o word_n he_o say_v how_o shall_v the_o unlearned_a say_v a_o man_n to_o thy_o thanksgiving_n for_o indeed_o it_o concern_v every_o one_o as_o he_o will_v answer_v the_o transgression_n of_o dicet_fw-la omnis_fw-la populus_fw-la all_o the_o people_n shall_v say_v which_o be_v a_o flat_a commandment_n not_o to_o be_v omit_v to_o add_v this_o word_n to_o their_o prayer_n the_o word_n itself_o be_v original_o hebrew_a but_o use_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o retain_v still_o in_o every_o language_n and_o tongue_n without_o translation_n or_o alteration_n either_o in_o greek_a latin_a or_o any_o other_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o retain_v of_o it_o be_v that_o be_v may_v appear_v that_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o true_a congregation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n gather_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n be_v but_o one_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n the_o same_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v by_o this_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n be_v say_v to_o cry_v non_fw-fr only_a abba_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o father_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n rom._n 8.20_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o have_v his_o name_n to_o be_v either_o entire_o hebrew_a as_o jesus_n messiah_n or_o entire_o greek_a as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o one_o in_o hebrew_n the_o other_o in_o greek_a jesus_n christ_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v our_o peace_n who_o of_o two_o have_v make_v one_o that_o have_v reconcile_v we_o both_o in_o one_o body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o corner_n stone_n whereby_o the_o church_n consist_v both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v couple_v together_o and_o grow_v to_o be_v one_o holy_a temple_n to_o the_o lord_n eph._n 2.14_o though_o they_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v congregatio_fw-la primogenitorum_fw-la heb._n 12.23_o yet_o we_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o they_o we_o i_o say_v that_o be_v bear_v after_o they_o we_o that_o be_v of_o the_o gentile_n have_v none_o other_o law_n for_o our_o direction_n then_o that_o which_o the_o jew_n have_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o write_v no_o new_a commandemem_fw-la but_o a_o old_a commandment_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n 1_o joh._n 2.7_o we_o have_v no_o other_o faith_n but_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v eundem_fw-la spiritum_fw-la fidei_fw-la habentes_fw-la 2_o cor._n 4._o the_o same_o grace_n be_v offer_v
that_o bell_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o broad_a dialect_n of_o the_o hebrew_n call_v baal_n first_o deify_v of_o beast_n how_o it_o come_v first_o for_o the_o deify_n of_o beast_n plutarch_n in_o his_o isis_n &_o osiris_n say_v that_o osiris_n king_n of_o egypt_n who_o porphyry_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o bacchus_n of_o the_o gentile_n divide_v his_o kingdom_n into_o certain_a province_n and_o to_o every_o province_n give_v a_o certain_a sign_n or_o cognisance_n agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o that_o most_o abound_v in_o that_o province_n as_o to_o the_o part_n most_o arable_a a_o ox_n that_o have_v most_o wood_n a_o dog_n to_o the_o part_n most_o full_a of_o meadow_n a_o clod_n with_o a_o little_a green_a grass_n on_o the_o top_n of_o it_o where_o most_o water_n be_v a_o crocodile_n the_o posterity_n come_v after_o he_o not_o know_v his_o purpose_n conceive_v of_o they_o as_o of_o some_o divine_a nature_n and_o every_o one_o worship_v that_o by_o which_o he_o have_v his_o living_n most_o especial_o as_o they_o that_o live_v by_o tillage_n the_o ox_n call_v it_o apis_n they_o which_o follow_v their_o hunt_n the_o dog_n call_v it_o anubito_fw-la they_o that_o live_v by_o their_o meadow_n their_o clod_n i._n isis_n and_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o idolatry_n miracle_n how_o miracle_n and_o oracle_n come_v among_o the_o heathen_a difference_n between_o good_a and_o bad_a miracle_n 3._o how_o then_o come_v their_o miracle_n and_o oracle_n for_o their_o miracle_n 1._o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o good_a miracle_n and_o a_o bad_a miracle_n the_o good_a tend_v to_o the_o profit_n of_o mankind_n as_o the_o raise_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o cure_n of_o incurable_a disease_n the_o feed_n of_o many_o thousand_o with_o a_o few_o loaf_n and_o fish_n etc._n etc._n the_o other_o have_v but_o a_o show_n of_o vanity_n altogether_o frivolous_a as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o simon_n magus_n that_o he_o make_v a_o hill_n seem_v to_o move_v accius_n manius_n do_v cut_v a_o whetstone_n with_o a_o razor_n and_o it_o be_v sure_a that_o apollonius_n thyanaeus_n have_v do_v as_o great_a miracle_n as_o all_o the_o oracle_n at_o delos_n they_o be_v but_o witch_n and_o sorcerer_n he_o be_v but_o three_o or_o four_o degree_n from_o mercurius_n 2._o the_o christian_a miracle_n be_v not_o expressible_a by_o magic_n proof_n for_o the_o oracle_n the_o heathen_a themselves_o against_o they_o auguslin_n out_o of_o porphyry_n concern_v the_o vanity_n of_o idol_n show_n 1._o the_o ambiguity_n 2._o the_o vanity_n 3._o the_o contrariety_n of_o oracle_n 4._o that_o most_o part_n come_v not_o to_o proof_n for_o their_o oracle_n porphyry_n say_v of_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o as_o great_a thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o magician_n in_o his_o time_n as_o by_o any_o of_o they_o hermes_n to_o asclepius_n profess_v that_o he_o through_o his_o magic_n bring_v certain_a spirit_n to_o possess_v the_o image_n of_o his_o grandfather_n and_o other_o suidas_n at_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phylis_n report_v that_o the_o chief_a idol_n of_o the_o egyptian_n be_v ask_v what_o he_o be_v answer_v that_o he_o be_v a_o under-spirit_n and_o that_o his_o name_n be_v serapion_n i._o in_o the_o holy_a tongue_n a_o angel_n zoroaster_n cham_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o devil_n fall_v out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o angel_n call_v seraphim_n jamblychus_n declare_v how_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v allure_v to_o come_v into_o image_n by_o anoint_v the_o image_n with_o wormwood_n at_o the_o length_n that_o they_o come_v most_o willing_o though_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v force_v with_o outward_a mean_n euseb_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la praepar_fw-la evang_v his_o confession_n of_o the_o oracle_n be_v that_o common_o they_o be_v ambiguous_a vain_a and_o frivolous_a 2._o and_o sometime_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o 3._o and_o most_o come_v not_o to_o proof_n 4._o and_o if_o they_o come_v to_o proof_n they_o may_v either_o have_v be_v do_v by_o astronomy_n or_o by_o some_o wise_a and_o politic_a man_n and_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o delight_v to_o have_v man_n sacrifice_v to_o they_o whereas_o god_n make_v man_n his_o special_a workmanship_n 1._o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v god_n they_o will_v rather_o seek_v to_o preserve_v man_n livius_n herodotus_n livius_n then_o to_o seek_v his_o utter_a ruin_n whereas_o they_o do_v covet_v their_o bloodshedding_n and_o that_o afterward_o of_o good_a man_n of_o virgin_n babe_n and_o young_a man_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o carthaginian_n 2._o the_o same_o god_n when_o they_o be_v more_o gentle_a they_o take_v this_o course_n when_o they_o deliver_v they_o from_o any_o war_n or_o from_o any_o other_o danger_n scevola_n improve_v by_o scipio_n nasica_n &_o scevola_n they_o require_v the_o institution_n of_o stage-play_n and_o spectacle_n of_o fencer_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n also_o be_v kill_v as_o also_o kind_n of_o circenses_fw-la aug._n 8._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la dei_fw-la if_o their_o god_n do_v so_o high_o accept_v of_o stage-play_n than_o shall_v the_o stage-player_n be_v in_o most_o price_n among_o the_o heathen_a as_o the_o especial_a servant_n of_o their_o god_n but_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o greece_n and_o and_o rome_n banish_v they_o make_v no_o account_n of_o they_o yea_o they_o make_v a_o decree_n that_o they_o shall_v die_v intestate_a ita_fw-la dum_fw-la tollunt_fw-la pestem_fw-la corporum_fw-la inducunt_fw-la pestem_fw-la animorum_fw-la so_o while_o they_o take_v away_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o body_n they_o bring_v in_o the_o plague_n of_o soul_n god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d styx_n the_o terror_n of_o the_o god_n 3_o last_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o it_o be_v common_a not_o only_o in_o homer_n and_o virgil_n but_o also_o in_o the_o philos_fw-la concern_v their_o god_n if_o they_o name_v but_o styx_n and_o cocytus_n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v tremble_v and_o be_v afraid_a the_o image_n will_v be_v all_o on_o a_o sweat_n juratote_n per_fw-la stygem_fw-la deorum_fw-la terrorem_fw-la swear_v you_o by_o styx_n the_o terror_n of_o the_o god_n but_o we_o know_v that_o no_o prince_n will_v be_v afraid_a of_o his_o own_o prison_n much_o less_o god_n of_o his_o prison_n for_o these_o cause_n though_o they_o mislike_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o religion_n yet_o not_o be_v able_a to_o come_v to_o a_o great_a perfection_n apolog_n rather_o look_v to_o quietness_n then_o to_o truth_n socra●es_n in_o apolog_n in_o his_o st●terunt_fw-la they_o persist_v in_o these_o but_o one_o go_v beyond_o they_o all_o i._o that_o say_v that_o one_o may_v as_o well_o swear_v by_o a_o onion_n or_o a_o leek_n as_o by_o jupiter_n and_o be_v wont_a to_o swear_v by_o the_o base_a and_o vile_a thing_n and_o inveigh_v much_o against_o the_o athenian_a god_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o god_n and_o for_o these_o and_o such_o article_n be_v arraign_v but_o as_o lacrtius_n testify_v not_o long_o after_o his_o death_n there_o happen_v such_o a_o plague_n as_o be_v never_o the_o like_o before_o or_o ever_o since_o 6._o prytanc●m_fw-mi be_v the_o place_n where_o those_o that_o have_v well_o deserve_v of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v keep_v 1_o cor._n 8.5_o 6._o and_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o oracle_n they_o have_v no_o other_o answer_n then_o that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o innocent_a so_o afterward_o then_o erect_v he_o a_o image_n in_o prytanco_n so_o in_o ascribe_v honour_n to_o he_o that_o dishonour_v their_o god_n they_o condemn_v both_o themselves_o and_o their_o god_n the_o concession_n be_v twofold_a 1._o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n to_o we_o 2._o that_o there_o be_v one_o christ_n the_o controversy_n between_o these_o of_o the_o heathen_a in_o religion_n be_v concern_v the_o first_o part_n the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o saracen_n be_v concern_v the_o second_o part_n as_o the_o jew_n utter_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v so_o the_o turk_n substitute_n another_o in_o his_o place_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o we_o messia_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n concern_v the_o messia_n the_o wise_a man_n affirmation_n and_o negation_n change_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n they_o acknowledge_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o well_o as_o we_o therefore_o the_o proof_n shall_v be_v from_o it_o and_o the_o author_n of_o most_o account_n among_o they_o the_o position_n that_o they_o hold_v be_v three_z first_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v have_v a_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o his_o seat_n shall_v be_v at_o jerusalem_n second_o that_o our_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o messiah_n three_o that_o he_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v the_o first_o if_o they_o will_v give_v credit_n to_o their_o
chaldean_a paraphra_v or_o to_o jonathan_n or_o to_o rabbi_n shim●on_n t●e_v son_n of_o ishai_n or_o to_o rabbi_n moses_n the_o son_n of_o nichar_n or_o to_o rabbi_n haccodesh_n monarch_n whether_o christ_n shall_v be_v a_o earthly_a monarch_n and_o to_o all_o the_o ancient_a rabbin_n that_o live_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n then_o be_v the_o matter_n at_o a_o end_n but_o they_o give_v more_o credit_n to_o the_o latter_a rabbin_n which_o all_o be_v move_v with_o envy_n against_o christ_n rabbi_n solomon_n nizahon_n for_o the_o first_o whether_o the_o messiah_n come_v shall_v be_v a_o earthly_a kingdom_n see_v esay_n 53.2_o but_o especial_o verse_n 6._o 8._o esay_n 53.6_o 8._o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v upon_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o but_o they_o shift_v this_o off_o and_o say_v it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o whole_a people_n but_o after_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v die_v for_o his_o people_n and_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v the_o people_n shall_v die_v for_o the_o people_n neither_o can_v they_o die_v psal_n 22.16.18_o they_o pierce_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n 18._o psal_n 22_o 16_o 17_o 18._o they_o part_v my_o garment_n among_o they_o and_o cast_v lot_n upon_o my_o vesture_n which_o can_v be_v understand_v by_o david_n 9.9_o zach._n 9.9_o zach._n 9.9_o the_o king_n of_o zion_n shall_v come_v to_o thou_o poor_a and_o humble_a sit_v on_o a_o ass_n most_o plain_o dan._n 9.26_o and_o after_o 62._o week_n messiah_n shall_v be_v slay_v 9.26_o daniel_n 9.26_o etc._n etc._n this_o the_o elder_a jew_n can_v not_o conceive_v and_o philo_n judaeus_fw-la understand_v it_o of_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o this_o place_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o messiah_n by_o john_n the_o baptist_n that_o send_v two_o of_o his_o disciple_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v that_o christ_n or_o no_o but_o especial_o that_o place_n of_o daniel_n trouble_v they_o insomuch_o that_o nizahon_n fall_v into_o these_o blasphemous_a word_n that_o the_o prophet_n be_v deceive_v and_o overseen_a reason_n against_o the_o jew_n 1._o haggai_n 2.8_o that_o the_o messiah_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v the_o expectation_n of_o the_o gentile_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o comfort_n to_o the_o gentile_n jew_n reason_n against_o the_o jew_n to_o have_v a_o strange_a reign_n over_o they_o which_o be_v forbid_v the_o jew_n deut._n 17.15_o 16._o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o 2._o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v be_v that_o that_o give_v felicity_n to_o all_o the_o world_n i_o will_v know_v of_o they_o how_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n can_v be_v save_v by_o a_o earthly_a prince_n and_o temporal_a they_o be_v dead_a many_o hundred_o year_n before_o his_o time_n this_o they_o shake_v off_o so_o weak_o that_o they_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v messiah_n it_o shall_v be_v as_o they_o say_v no_o big_a than_o it_o be_v before_o as_o also_o the_o city_n god_n will_v not_o call_v the_o saint_n from_o the_o fell-city_n that_o they_o have_v with_o he_o to_o a_o earthly_a banquet_n whether_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n that_o they_o and_o all_o the_o true_a jew_n shall_v return_v to_o life_n again_o but_o that_o be_v absurd_a than_o the_o first_o for_o first_o they_o do_v themselves_o injury_n to_o think_v that_o the_o land_n of_o jury_n as_o also_o their_o temple_n can_v hold_v all_o the_o jew_n that_o ever_o be_v 2._o they_o be_v utter_o injurious_a to_o the_o heavenly_a soul_n to_o call_v they_o out_o of_o a_o heavenly_a paradise_n out_o of_o abraham_n bosom_n to_o come_v into_o a_o earthly_a paradise_n the_o three_o be_v common_a by_o this_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o purgation_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n for_o this_o earthly_a kingdom_n can_v purge_v the_o soul_n it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o body_n the_o second_o part_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o messiah_n 1._o gen._n 49.10_o that_o the_o sceptre_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o judah_n nor_o a_o lawgiver_n from_o between_o his_o foot_n till_o shiloh_n come_v it_o be_v sure_a that_o before_o the_o captivity_n it_o be_v altogether_o in_o judah_n till_o the_o lead_n of_o the_o captivity_n continue_v in_o the_o captivity_n they_o have_v it_o by_o one_o of_o their_o brethren_n that_o be_v call_v the_o king_n of_o captivity_n and_o after_o the_o captivity_n it_o continue_v till_o it_o fall_v between_o aristobulus_n and_o hircanus_n deportatae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rex_fw-la multitudinis_fw-la deportatae_fw-la who_o strive_v for_o it_o be_v both_o dispossess_v and_o herod_n a_o idumaean_a place_v in_o their_o room_n and_o then_o be_v the_o time_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o they_o shift_v this_o off_o and_o say_v that_o the_o macchabee_n be_v not_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n object_n object_n but_o of_o levi_n and_o so_o deny_v the_o prophecy_n sol._n the_o prophecy_n be_v divide_v sol._n sol._n that_o either_o a_o king_n or_o a_o lawgiver_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n even_o till_o christ_n be_v bear_v its_o manifest_a for_o they_o confess_v that_o simeon_n justus_n note_n note_n who_o song_n we_o have_v in_o our_o liturgy_n be_v the_o last_o of_o they_o and_o ever_o since_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o their_o sanedrim_n disperse_v the_o three_o answer_n object_n object_n they_o say_v that_o in_o the_o prophecy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sceptre_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o judah_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v not_o a_o sceptre_n but_o a_o tribe_n so_o that_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o judah_n shall_v be_v a_o tribe_n till_o shiloah_n come_v even_o that_o way_n they_o be_v confound_v for_o ever_o since_o that_o time_n sol._n sol._n all_o the_o tribe_n have_v be_v promiscuae_fw-la confuse_v and_o the_o emperor_n present_o after_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o in_o judaea_n nascetur_fw-la orbis_fw-la dominus_fw-la the_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v bear_v in_o judaea_n seek_v to_o root_v out_o the_o jew_n and_o especial_o that_o tribe_n that_o christ_n shall_v come_v of_o and_o so_o it_o make_v they_o to_o confound_v their_o genealogy_n 2._o dan._n 9.25_o daniel_n receive_v this_o oracle_n from_o the_o angel_n that_o from_o that_o time_n to_o messiah_n etc._n etc._n what_o these_o seven_o week_n be_v it_o be_v show_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o stand_v for_o year_n so_o count_v for_o every_o week_n seven_o year_n 49._o and_o so_o long_o be_v the_o temple_n in_o building_n for_o three_o year_n they_o be_v in_o build_v the_o wall_n and_o gather_v themselves_o together_o the_o other_o 46._o in_o build_v the_o temple_n as_o the_o jew_n say_v to_o our_o saviour_n from_o that_o time_n to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n 490._o year_n 3._o hag._n 2.10_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o last_o house_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o the_o first_o but_o in_o the_o first_o temple_n there_o be_v th●_n ark_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o pot_n of_o manna_n aaron_n rod_n the_o shewbread_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o temple_n have_v none_o of_o these_o but_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o second_o temple_n shall_v be_v more_o glorious_a this_o glory_n they_o can_v find_v unless_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n for_o forty_o year_n after_o his_o death_n it_o be_v destroy_v so_o they_o make_v this_o no_o prophecy_n famous_a petrus_n galatinus_n de_fw-fr ar●●●is_fw-la two_o famous_a company_n among_o the_o jew_n the_o scholar_n of_o rabbi_n shamma_n 2._o of_o r._n hillel_n but_o the_o latter_a the_o more_o famous_a petrus_n galatinus_n out_o of_o the_o three_o of_o their_o talmud_n that_o the_o scholar_n of_o rabbi_n hillel_n consider_v th●se_a three_o prophecy_n daniel_n haggai_n esay_n though_o they_o live_v 50_o year_n before_o his_o time_n hope_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o those_o day_n be_v thereto_o induce_v by_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 60._o chapter_n of_o esay_n that_o god_n will_v hasten_v his_o come_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n of_o the_o talmud_n on_o that_o place_n esay_n 9.7_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d finale_fw-la in_o all_o copy_n in_o that_o place_n only_o against_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o letter_n whereupon_o rabbi_n thalumma_n do_v hold_v it_o be_v a_o oracle_n s●_n that_o i●_n be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o year_n between_o esay_n and_o christ_n his_o come_n i_o 600._o year_n 3._o they_o say_v messiah_n this_o a_o principle_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o veil_n shall_v not_o open_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n fail_v till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n shall_v not_o cease_v which_o
est_fw-la sva_fw-la peccata_fw-la patriae_fw-la &_o suorum_fw-la quantum_fw-la fiori_fw-it potest_fw-la tegere_fw-la &_o all_o of_o nothing_o so_o for_o a_o man_n to_o come_v to_o this_o that_o he_o will_v not_o conceal_v his_o father_n mother_n or_o friend_n fault_n to_o speak_v against_o his_o own_o country_n and_o countryman_n yea_o against_o himself_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n &_o can_v be_v wrought_v in_o man_n but_o by_o a_o supernatural_a cause_n this_o we_o see_v the_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v it_o be_v natural_a to_o every_o man_n so_o far_o as_o he_o can_v to_o cover_v his_o own_o fault_n and_o the_o fault_n of_o his_o country_n and_o friend_n moses_n when_o no_o necessity_n bind_v he_o confess_v that_o he_o come_v of_o a_o curse_a stock_n spare_v not_o his_o brother_n aaron_n fault_n in_o make_v the_o calf_n but_o commit_v it_o to_o writing_n spare_v not_o his_o sister_n miriam_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o murmur_a no_o not_o his_o own_o fault_n in_o murmur_v against_o the_o lord_n at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n 11.11_o numb_a 11.11_o dispossess_v his_o own_o child_n and_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o magistracy_n a_o very_a unnatural_a thing_n but_o prefer_v joshua_n yea_o he_o put_v by_o his_o own_o tribe_n and_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o prefer_v ephraim_n this_o be_v not_o able_a to_o agree_v with_o the_o natural_a man_n but_o must_v come_v from_o a_o high_a cause_n therefore_o the_o writer_n of_o these_o book_n must_v be_v inspire_v by_o god_n 10._o whereas_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o the_o great_a philosopher_n and_o most_o learned_a man_n be_v to_o teach_v how_o king_n shall_v enlarge_v their_o kingdom_n and_o to_o be_v in_o credit_n with_o prince_n and_o great_a man_n this_o teach_v that_o life_n be_v the_o contempt_n of_o life_n it_o teach_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n and_o worldly_a honour_n the_o prophet_n they_o never_o seek_v to_o be_v in_o favour_n with_o prince_n but_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o that_o they_o answer_v they_o not_o so_o much_o to_o that_o they_o ask_v as_o to_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v ask_v therefore_o this_o be_v supernatural_a therefore_o the_o true_a way_n and_o from_o god_n not_o from_o man_n jew_n against_o the_o jew_n the_o next_o point_n as_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n so_o must_v his_o worship_n be_v spiritual_a so_o we_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o forbid_v of_o image_n and_o shadow_n but_o also_o a_o flat_a negative_a and_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o god_n unity_n though_o false_a religion_n may_v agree_v with_o the_o true_a in_o the_o first_o point_n yet_o not_o in_o the_o second_o so_o in_o this_o regard_n howsoever_o they_o exclude_v image_n yet_o they_o fault_n in_o this_o that_o all_o their_o worship_n be_v ceremonial_a bodily_a and_o ritual_a consist_v in_o matter_n of_o ablution_n and_o outward_a type_n and_o though_o there_o be_v type_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n yet_o he_o proclaym_v every_o where_o that_o he_o abhor_v they_o for_o he_o will_v have_v a_o contrite_a heart_n and_o only_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o heart_n therefore_o as_o man_n be_v bodily_a and_o his_o notion_n fall_v into_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o body_n so_o as_o that_o worship_n that_o come_v from_o he_o be_v bodily_a whereas_o the_o worship_n that_o come_v from_o god_n be_v spiritual_a 2._o to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o of_o miracle_n and_o oracle_n to_o confirm_v this_o religion_n as_o the_o other_o do_v in_o confirm_v their_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o do_v in_o corner_n but_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o pharaoh_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o servant_n 2._o again_o they_o be_v not_o frivolous_a but_o they_o that_o have_v feel_v they_o have_v get_v good_a by_o they_o 3._o they_o be_v not_o imitable_a nor_o expressible_a by_o the_o art_n of_o man_n as_o the_o divide_n of_o the_o red_a sea_n the_o cause_v the_o sun_n to_o stand_v still_o in_o joshuahs_n time_n the_o make_n of_o ahaz_n dial_n to_o go_v back_o 10._o degree_n both_o which_o areopageta_n say_v be_v in_o the_o persian_a oracle_n the_o rain_v of_o manna_n from_o heaven_n jannes_n and_o jambres_n be_v not_o able_a to_o imitate_v moses_n for_o oracle_n of_o the_o gentile_n they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d philippise_v oracle_n oracle_n speak_v as_o king_n philip_n will_v have_v they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v very_o ambiguous_a and_o need_v delio_n natatore_fw-la the_o swimmer_n the_o interpreter_n apollo_n to_o expound_v they_o therefore_o porphyry_n say_v that_o their_o oracle_n common_o have_v posticum_fw-la a_o backdoor_n these_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d philippise_v be_v not_o doubtful_a need_v no_o delius_n natator_n the_o swimmer_n the_o interpreter_n apollo_n last_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n oracle_n come_v not_o to_o pass_v but_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o come_v all_o to_o pass_v some_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o some_o 500_o some_o a_o thousand_o some_o three_o thousand_o as_o the_o dilatation_n of_o japheth_n which_o happen_v not_o before_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o this_o for_o confirmation_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n common_a to_o the_o jew_n aswell_o as_o to_o we_o those_o that_o follow_v be_v proper_a to_o christian_a religion_n 1._o aug._n 23._o de_fw-la eivitate_fw-la dei_fw-la out_o of_o porphyry_n de_fw-fr regressu_fw-la animae_fw-la of_o the_o regress_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o great_a enemy_n that_o ever_o the_o church_n have_v that_o it_o be_v no_o true_a religion_n that_o do_v not_o yield_v a_o sufficient_a purgation_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n moreover_o he_o add_v there_o that_o the_o platonist_n receive_v from_o the_o chaldee_n that_o the_o purgation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n can_v be_v nisi_fw-la per_fw-la principia_fw-la but_o by_o the_o principle_n we_o know_v that_o plato_n his_o principle_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n the_o mind_n love_n a_o enignaticall_a speech_n of_o our_o trinity_n but_o this_o i._o the_o purgation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n no_o religion_n teach_v but_o we_o for_o it_o teach_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n take_v upon_o he_o sinful_a flesh_n to_o purge_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n therefore_o we_o the_o true_a all_o the_o rest_n be_v mere_o bodily_a for_o all_o their_o exorcism_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v bodily_a and_o not_o spiritual_a and_o so_o withal_o the_o god_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v not_o like_a to_o the_o heathen_a god_n for_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o who_o love_v man_n i._n he_o delight_v not_o in_o cut_v man_n throat_n or_o burn_v they_o to_o afhe_n as_o their_o devil_n have_v virgin_n babe_n old_a man_n young_a man_n good_a man_n offer_v up_o to_o they_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o beast_n in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v only_o use_v for_o two_o respect_n 1._o that_o they_o may_v be_v type_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n 2._o to_o be_v a_o admonition_n to_o man_n to_o show_v they_o that_o they_o have_v deserve_v to_o be_v thus_o kill_v and_o sacrifice_v god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v man_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v to_o he_o that_o he_o himself_o come_v down_o to_o give_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o what_o great_a love_n can_v be_v then_o for_o a_o man_n to_o give_v his_o life_n for_o that_o he_o love_v for_o his_o friend_n therefore_o no_o great_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d love_v to_o man_n then_o this_o 1.1_o in_o a_o witness_n two_o thing_n require_v 1._o skill_n 2._o honesty_n 1._o joh._n 1.1_o now_o for_o the_o gospel_n 1._o for_o the_o witness_n in_o a_o witness_n two_o thing_n require_v 1._o skill_n 2._o honesty_n first_o for_o the_o skill_n there_o be_v never_o a_o one_o of_o they_o but_o can_v say_v we_o write_v and_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v with_o our_o eye_n which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o and_o which_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v not_o as_o homer_n plato_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v their_o thing_n from_o other_o and_o by_o report_n and_o withal_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o scripture_n write_v they_o when_o the_o world_n bear_v great_a hatred_n against_o they_o and_o yet_o never_o any_o dare_v write_v any_o book_n against_o moses_n in_o his_o time_n or_o against_o the_o gospel_n in_o these_o day_n and_o de_fw-fr probitate_fw-la testis_fw-la concern_v the_o honesty_n of_o a_o witness_n witness_n the_o honesty_n of_o a_o witness_n there_o can_v be_v no_o better_a reason_n give_v then_o that_o tacitus_n give_v that_o they_o testify_v best_a quibus_fw-la nullum_fw-la est_fw-la mendacii_fw-la pretium_fw-la that_o have_v nothing_o for_o their_o labour_n
of_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v this_o against_o the_o philosopher_n that_o quiequid_a fit_n be_v audit●_n an●_n be_v fide_fw-la fit_n whatsoever_o be_v do_v it_o be_v faith_n that_o do_v it_o but_o there_o faith_n be_v not_o full_o that_o which_o it_o be_v here_o but_o a_o faith_n which_o be_v civil_a as_o the_o husbandman_n faith_n be_v a_o civil_a faith_n he_o see_v unkindly_a weather_n etc._n etc._n make_v himself_o ready_a every_o year_n to_o sow_v and_o till_o his_o ground_n and_o to_o bestow_v great_a cost_n and_o pain_n on_o it_o though_o he_o have_v no_o demonstrative_a knowledge_n whether_o he_o shall_v reap_v any_o commodity_n of_o it_o that_o year_n so_o it_o be_v in_o merchandise_n the_o merchant_n see_v storm_n arise_v very_o oft_o yet_o they_o hazard_v their_o good_n upon_o a_o civil_a faith_n so_o in_o marriage_n some_o be_v unfruitful_a yet_o they_o marry_v in_o hope_n to_o have_v child_n so_o in_o warfare_n the_o soldier_n make_v himself_o ready_a for_o the_o battle_n in_o hope_n of_o victory_n the_o schoolman_n that_o come_v after_o they_o they_o go_v a_o subtle_a way_n to_o work_v and_o they_o hold_v that_o quicquid_fw-la scitur_fw-la fide_fw-la scitur_fw-la that_o even_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o know_v we_o do_v believe_v for_o our_o sense_n understanding_n we_o know_v and_o they_o be_v our_o witness_n our_o reason_n conceive_v we_o know_v and_o it_o bear_v we_o witness_v and_o they_o themselves_o confess_v that_o both_o the_o witness_n be_v very_o deceitful_a for_o they_o eye_n which_o be_v the_o best_a of_o outward_a sense_n and_o certain_a because_o it_o apprehend_v more_o difference_n and_o apprehend_v his_o object_n after_o a_o more_o special_a manner_n the_o optic_n reckon_v up_o twenty_o way_n how_o it_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o a_o great_a imperfection_n in_o it_o 1_o cor._n 13.11_o when_o we_o be_v child_n we_o speak_v as_o child_n degree_n the_o perfectness_n of_o the_o faculty_n of_o see_v stand_v but_o in_o degree_n conceive_v and_o reason_n as_o child_n they_o at_o the_o plough_n can_v judge_v of_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o thing_n because_o they_o can_v see_v they_o but_o tell_v they_o of_o labour_n and_o that_o they_o see_v therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o superior_a understanding_n they_o be_v far_o short_a therefore_o we_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o thing_n above_o we_o so_o there_o may_v a_o relation_n be_v make_v this_o locus_fw-la à_fw-la testimonio_fw-la the_o unperfectnesse_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o science_n come_v of_o the_o unperfectnesse_n of_o the_o knowledge_n by_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o certain_a way_n than_o this_o now_o to_o the_o place_n of_o testimony_n it_o have_v his_o imperfection_n only_o from_o the_o imperfection_n of_o science_n it_o have_v but_o two_o exception_n first_o want_v of_o skill_n second_o want_v of_o faithfulness_n now_o if_o the_o party_n want_v skill_n and_o can_v or_o if_o he_o can_v but_o be_v not_o honest_a and_o will_v not_o his_o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v whereas_o the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n and_o ground_n of_o divinity_n be_v lay_v upon_o such_o witness_n as_o want_v neither_o skill_n nor_o faithfulness_n but_o for_o their_o skill_n can_v and_o for_o their_o faithfulness_n will_v deliver_v the_o truth_n therefore_o it_o have_v a_o full_a resolution_n than_o the_o other_o for_o as_o it_o be_v 2_o tim._n 1.12_o we_o believe_v not_o who_o we_o know_v but_o scio_fw-la cvi_fw-la credo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d credidi_fw-la though_o we_o may_v not_o say_v sclo_n quoth_v sca●_n yet_o we_o may_v say_v scio_fw-la cvi_fw-la credidi_fw-la we_o know_v he_o who_o we_o believe_v we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v amen_o and_o as_o it_o be_v revel_v 1.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o faithful_a witness_n and_o as_o it_o be_v rev._n 3.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d these_o thing_n say_v the_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o god_n tit._n 1.2_o such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v lie_v now_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o give_v his_o testimony_n the_o term_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v dictum_fw-la jehovae_fw-la dixit_fw-la dominus_fw-la thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 1._o there_o be_v his_o say_n and_o because_o a_o man_n stipulation_n and_o promise_n be_v certain_a than_o his_o bare_a say_n and_o will_v be_v better_o believe_v and_o soon_o take_v therefore_o rom._n 1.2_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o have_v promise_v before_o by_o his_o prophet_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o tit._n 1.2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v promise_v before_o the_o world_n begin_v 2._o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n and_o 3._o heb._n 6.17_o 18._o for_o our_o great_a comfort_n and_o assurance_n he_o have_v also_o swear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n wherein_o god_n will_v more_o abundant_o to_o show_v unto_o we_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n the_o immutability_n of_o his_o counsel_n confirm_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n etc._n etc._n and_o because_o if_o we_o have_v a_o man_n hand_n set_v to_o in_o writing_n we_o will_v believe_v he_o yet_o more_o 4._o we_o have_v his_o handwriting_n in_o exod._n 32.33_o 34._o write_v with_o his_o own_o finger_n wherein_o he_o have_v set_v down_o that_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n and_o take_v vengeance_n on_o who_o he_o will_v take_v vengeance_n 5._o for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o hand_n write_v rom._n 4.11_o he_o have_v set_v his_o handwriting_n under_o a_o seal_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o last_o which_o be_v the_o further_a degree_n a_o man_n can_v go_v he_o have_v give_v we_o a_o pledge_n a_o earnest_a penny_n 2_o cor._n 1.22_o who_o also_o have_v seal_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o give_v we_o the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n 2_o cor._n 5.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o he_o that_o have_v wrought_v we_o for_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n be_v god_n who_o also_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o exception_n that_o may_v be_v take_v against_o this_o object_n object_n be_v that_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n be_v not_o daily_o hear_v among_o we_o and_o that_o which_o we_o hear_v be_v entitle_v to_o other_o as_o to_o moses_n esay_n jeremy_n matthew_n etc._n etc._n answ_n answ_n proem_n 2_o pet._n 1.21_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v as_o in_o the_o proem_n yea_o but_o though_o man_n do_v it_o yet_o they_o be_v such_o man_n as_o do_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o nor_o follow_v their_o own_o interpretation_n but_o as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o our_o prince_n will_v not_o speak_v to_o we_o by_o she_o own_o mouth_n but_o by_o proclamation_n we_o must_v allow_v as_o to_o our_o prince_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o ambassador_n and_o his_o writ_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o speak_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o we_o hear_v god_n himself_o speak_v viva_fw-la voce_fw-la from_o heaven_n unto_o we_o how_o know_v i_o that_o this_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n object_n object_n as_o the_o sceptre_n of_o the_o kingdom_n deliver_v to_o they_o that_o bring_v it_o answ_n answ_n be_v a_o witness_n among_o we_o that_o they_o come_v from_o and_o for_o the_o prince_n so_o the_o sceptre_n of_o god_n extraordinary_a power_n be_v commit_v to_o these_o man_n and_o be_v a_o witness_n unto_o they_o john_n 6.30_o the_o jew_n require_v of_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o will_v show_v they_o a_o sign_n which_o be_v this_o sceptre_n and_o christ_n john_n 10.38_o will_v desire_v no_o more_o of_o the_o jew_n then_o that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o for_o his_o word_n yet_o for_o his_o work_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n if_o i_o do_v then_o though_o you_o believe_v not_o i_o believe_v the_o work_n etc._n etc._n john_n 15.24_o he_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v such_o thing_n nor_o wrought_v such_o miracle_n among_o they_o they_o may_v have_v have_v excuse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v work_n among_o they_o which_o no_o other_o man_n do_v contra_fw-la the_o mutual_a proof_n dictum_fw-la supra_fw-la naturam_fw-la by_o factum_fw-la supra_fw-la naturam_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la etc._n etc._n augustine_n upon_o that_o that_o they_o be_v do_v say_v that_o either_o we_o must_v grant_v that_o these_o miracle_n be_v do_v or_o else_o that_o without_o any_o miracle_n all_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v and_o become_v christian_n
the_o high_a mountain_n that_o stand_v in_o christ_n way_n and_o unless_o john_n baptist_n take_v pain_n to_o remove_v it_o he_o can_v come_v to_o we_o i_o find_v that_o this_o vice_n through_o the_o father_n be_v call_v morbus_fw-la satanicus_n and_o it_o have_v a_o resemblance_n to_o our_o disease_n that_o have_v their_o name_n of_o the_o person_n as_o morbus_fw-la gallicus_n etc._n etc._n the_o french_a disease_n so_o this_o the_o devil_n disease_n it_o be_v high-born_a and_o so_o light_o take_v hold_v of_o they_o that_o be_v high-born_a for_o it_o be_v first_o bear_v in_o heaven_n and_o so_o no_o other_o can_v be_v conclude_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o divinity_n by_o esa_n 14.14_o apply_v that_o to_o satan_n ero_n similis_fw-la altissimo_fw-la i_o will_v be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a because_o he_o will_v have_v a_o part_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o be_v above_o his_o degree_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o make_v he_o fall_v the_o devil_n have_v knowledge_n and_o fear_n but_o not_o humility_n so_o the_o devil_n take_v it_o first_o and_o adam_n take_v it_o from_o he_o so_o we_o come_v to_o be_v heir_n of_o it_o and_o as_o he_o say_v to_o himself_o ero_n i_o will_v be_v so_o in_o gen._n 3._o he_o say_v to_o adam_n and_o eve_n eritis_fw-la sicut_fw-la d._n ay_o i_o simile_n altissimo_fw-la you_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n i.e._n you_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v content_a with_o that_o honourable_a place_n that_o god_n have_v assign_v they_o but_o persuade_v they_o to_o aspire_v to_o a_o high_a christ_n luke_o 10.8_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v come_v home_o joyful_a and_o proud_a that_o the_o devil_n be_v make_v subject_a to_o they_o in_o his_o name_n say_v to_o they_o that_o that_o may_v be_v profitable_a in_o meditation_n to_o we_o vidi_n satanam_fw-la cadentem_fw-la sicut_fw-la fulgur_fw-la behold_v i_o behold_v satan_n as_o lightning_n fall_v from_o heaven_n but_o rejoice_v not_o in_o this_o god_n this_o this_o this_o because_o they_o rejoice_v therein_o and_o give_v not_o glory_n to_o god_n but_o rather_o that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n for_o take_v joy_n in_o that_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o and_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v of_o they_o may_v be_v fit_o say_v of_o any_o that_o this_o pride_n take_v hold_v of_o this_o pride_n stand_v special_o in_o two_o thing_n which_o both_o be_v in_o the_o speech_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n glory_n all_o the_o head_n of_o glory_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o these_o two_o 1._o from_o ourselves_o 2._o to_o our_o own_o glory_n dan._n 4.27_o and_o the_o king_n speak_v and_o say_v be_v not_o this_o great_a babel_n that_o i_o have_v build_v for_o the_o house_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o might_n of_o my_o power_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o majesty_n if_o we_o ascribe_v to_o ourselves_o either_o of_o these_o that_o we_o do_v any_o thing_n by_o the_o might_n of_o our_o own_o power_n or_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o own_o majesty_n i._o either_o that_o it_o come_v from_o we_o or_o that_o we_o do_v it_o for_o our_o glory_n this_o be_v pride_n more_o particular_o as_o we_o say_v it_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o have_v that_o excellency_n attribute_v to_o we_o that_o be_v not_o in_o we_o so_o 4._o way_n it_o fall_v out_o 1._o for_o he_o must_v first_o think_v that_o he_o have_v a_o great_a good_a thing_n than_o he_o have_v and_o often_o time_n that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o at_o all_o as_o revel_v 3.17_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o laodicean_n thou_o think_v thyself_o rich_a and_o wise_a and_o behold_v thou_o be_v blind_a naked_a miserable_a and_o wretched_a and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n in_o thou_o and_o as_o 1_o tim._n 3.6_o none_o so_o subject_a to_o this_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d young_a novice_n that_o have_v green_a shallow_a thing_n in_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o a_o novice_n lest_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o which_o chrysostome_n write_v say_v if_o they_o be_v humble_a it_o be_v no_o commendation_n to_o they_o for_o if_o the_o servant_n submit_v himself_o to_o his_o master_n he_o have_v no_o commendation_n for_o it_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o one_o have_v wherewithal_o to_o be_v proud_a and_o yet_o be_v humble_a he_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o commendation_n 2._o when_o we_o have_v a_o little_a good_a to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a good_a in_o we_o than_o we_o have_v indeed_o ezek._n 28.12_o that_o man_n be_v give_v to_o seal_v up_o great_a sum_n above_o that_o that_o be_v in_o they_o 2_o cor._n 10.14_o of_o stretch_v and_o set_v on_o the_o tenterhooks_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o where_o a_o man_n have_v a_o little_a there_o be_v a_o stretch_n of_o that_o little_a by_o self-love_n and_o the_o devil_n he_o draw_v up_o a_o false_a light_n and_o show_v ourselves_o to_o ourselves_o in_o a_o mist_n or_o when_o he_o have_v make_v we_o drink_v with_o self-love_n make_v a_o little_a seem_v very_o much_o and_o so_o we_o come_v to_o see_v gemina_fw-la objecta_fw-la &_o geminos_fw-la sole_n every_o thing_n will_v seem_v double_a 3._o it_o be_v more_o excellent_a for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v a_o thing_n of_o himself_o desert_n himself_o himself_o himself_o and_o that_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1._o when_o he_o think_v he_o have_v a_o thing_n grow_v from_o his_o own_o nature_n or_o when_o he_o attribute_n it_o to_o his_o own_o desert_n then_o of_o another_o if_o we_o have_v it_o of_o ourselves_o than_o our_o glory_n be_v the_o more_o this_o be_v a_o great_a way_n in_o pride_n to_o imagine_v that_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o good_a we_o have_v but_o 1_o cor._n 4.7_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n who_o make_v thou_o to_o differ_v etc._n etc._n name_n one_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v he_o abate_v that_o pride_n well_o 2._o but_o another_o be_v though_o a_o man_n have_v it_o not_o of_o himself_o yet_o if_o he_o deserve_v to_o have_v it_o and_o not_o upon_o courtesy_n of_o another_o it_o be_v somewhat_o worth_a and_o so_o come_v the_o 4._o degree_n of_o pride_n but_o that_o be_v lay_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n gen._n 32.10_o if_o we_o will_v be_v heir_n to_o israel_n we_o will_v say_v with_o he_o o_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a of_o the_o least_o of_o all_o the_o mercy_n and_o of_o all_o the_o truth_n that_o thou_o have_v show_v unto_o thy_o servant_n so_o we_o be_v to_o think_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o that_o without_o any_o deserve_n of_o we_o but_o of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v charge_v with_o these_o two_o degree_n of_o pride_n in_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o any_o good_a come_v from_o ourselves_o that_o we_o know_v we_o have_v receive_v all_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n but_o how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o we_o think_v so_o these_o two_o thing_n will_v shrewd_o try_v we_o 1._o if_o any_o one_o of_o we_o mispending_a time_n or_o money_n riotous_o or_o any_o abuse_n of_o any_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o be_v find_v fault_n withal_o present_o we_o forget_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o theory_n so_o in_o our_o practice_n we_o disallow_v that_o which_o we_o allow_v in_o our_o theory_n and_o all_o into_o the_o bias_n of_o our_o own_o nature_n and_o every_o one_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v why_o what_o tell_v you_o i_o of_o this_o be_v it_o not_o my_o own_o in_o deed_n it_o shall_v seem_v by_o our_o spend_n that_o we_o deal_v with_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v our_o own_o not_o as_o if_o we_o be_v steward_n of_o it_o 2._o another_o be_v this_o that_o which_o be_v not_o our_o own_o but_o borrow_v we_o know_v we_o must_v be_v willing_a to_o render_v it_o at_o the_o owner_n call_v let_v god_n visit_v we_o with_o a_o deprive_v of_o any_o of_o his_o gift_n there_o be_v such_o murmur_a such_o grudge_n at_o it_o as_o plain_o show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o render_v free_o as_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o free_o and_o it_o be_v hard_o for_o we_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v borrow_v which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o we_o account_v all_o as_o our_o own_o these_o be_v trial_n concern_v our_o judgement_n and_o we_o common_o err_v in_o these_o two_o 5._o the_o last_o be_v on_o this_o ground_n though_o the_o gift_n in_o we_o be_v equal_a to_o other_o yet_o if_o we_o employ_v it_o better_o we_o think_v it_o more_o excellency_n luke_o 18.11_o it_o be_v the_o pharisee_n fault_n o_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o i_o be_o not_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o our_o self_n either_o a_o petition_n of_o some_o good_a to_o be_v givenus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deprecation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o evil_a thing_n may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o we_o thus_o it_o be_v interpret_v by_o the_o father_n evil_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deprecation_n of_o evil_a for_o deprecatio_fw-la that_o evil_a may_v be_v turn_v away_o it_o be_v certainee_o as_o james_n 5.17_o the_o most_o essential_a kind_n of_o prayer_n be_v any_o of_o you_o afflict_v let_v he_o pray_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o the_o remove_n of_o evil_n be_v sub_fw-la ratione_fw-la boni_fw-la though_o hope_n apprehend_v nothing_o but_o good_a yet_o this_o come_v under_o the_o show_n of_o good_a and_o so_o come_v under_o hope_n malum_fw-la ut_fw-la avertatur_fw-la auferatur_fw-la minuatur_fw-la malum_fw-la it_o be_v in_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o as_o it_o be_v dan._n 9.16_o that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n may_v be_v turn_v away_o before_o it_o come_v upon_o we_o 2._o or_o as_o psal_n 25.22_o deliver_v israel_n o_o god_n out_o of_o all_o his_o trouble_n i._o be_v now_o in_o it_o that_o we_o may_v be_v deliver_v it_o be_v call_v liberatio_fw-la deliverance_n 3._o or_o as_o psal_n 85.4_o mitiga_fw-la iram_fw-la tuam_fw-la domino_fw-la when_o we_o pray_v for_o a_o diminution_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o sustain_v it_o 1._o the_o first_o part_n stand_v always_o in_o a_o confession_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o defect_n in_o do_v of_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v do_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v just_o punish_v for_o not_o do_v of_o it_o so_o the_o prophet_n in_o sundry_a psalm_n run_v through_o all_o his_o sin_n original_a and_o actual_a those_o which_o he_o commit_v before_o his_o conversion_n and_o after_o those_o that_o he_o have_v do_v by_o omission_n or_o commission_n those_o that_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o thought_n word_n or_o deed_n against_o god_n or_o against_o his_o brethren_n either_o by_o instigation_n of_o himself_o or_o enforce_v by_o other_o prov._n 28.13_o h●e_n that_o cover_v his_o sin_n shall_v not_o prosper_v there_o be_v a_o dangerous_a say_n and_o psal_n 32.3_o 4_o 5._o there_o be_v a_o dangerous_a example_n till_o he_o have_v open_v his_o sin_n and_o make_v they_o know_v his_o bone_n wear_v away_o and_o his_o moisture_n become_v as_o the_o drought_n in_o summer_n 2._o that_o be_v do_v than_o we_o come_v to_o the_o essential_a deprecation_n to_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v divert_v his_o just_a deserve_a judgement_n from_o we_o and_o 1._o against_o that_o malum_fw-la that_o be_v maxim_n deprecandum_fw-la that_o evil_a that_o be_v most_o to_o be_v pray_v against_o luke_n 22.31_o the_o sieve_n of_o satan_n cribrum_fw-la satanae_fw-la that_o our_o sin_n in_o affliction_n winnow_v we_o not_o as_o satan_n desire_v that_o he_o may_v winnow_v peter_n not_o wish_v as_o they_o common_o wish_v i_o will_v i_o be_v out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o as_o john_n 17.15_o christ_n non_fw-la ut_fw-la tollas_fw-la eos_fw-la è_fw-la mundo_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la liberes_fw-la à_fw-la malo_fw-la i_o pray_v not_o that_o thou_o will_v take_v they_o from_o the_o world_n but_o that_o thou_o shall_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o evil_a and_o desire_v this_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o that_o promise_n 1_o cor._n 10.13_o can_v be_v void_a he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o our_o strength_n and_o that_o either_o our_o strength_n shall_v increase_v as_o the_o cross_n increase_v or_o as_o our_o strength_n diminish_v our_o cross_n shall_v so_o diminish_v also_o then_o 1_o king_n 8.38_o what_o plague_n soever_o any_o shall_v seel_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o shall_v make_v prayer_n and_o supplication_n for_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v remove_v in_o temporal_a danger_n 2_o chron._n 10.12_o jehosophat_n cum_fw-la ignoramus_fw-la quid_fw-la agendum_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la solum_fw-la restat_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la oculos_fw-la dirigamus_fw-la domine_fw-la neither_o know_v we_o what_o to_o do_v but_o our_o eye_n be_v upon_o thou_o for_o as_o prov._n 18.10_o that_o same_o nomen_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o shall_v be_v turris_fw-la fortissima_fw-la the_o strong_a tower_n to_o we_o as_o to_o the_o saint_n it_o have_v be_v but_o yet_o for_o this_o temporal_a evil_n we_o must_v submit_v to_o god_n will_v in_o that_o we_o must_v stand_v as_o the_o three_o child_n dan._n 3.17_o they_o answer_v to_o the_o king_n we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o lord_n who_o we_o serve_v be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o this_o fiery_a furnace_n but_o though_o he_o will_v not_o because_o the_o covenant_n be_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o will_v we_o not_o serve_v thy_o god_n nor_o worship_v the_o golden_a image_n which_o thou_o have_v set_v up_o and_o as_o christ_n luke_n 22.42_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o and_o yet_o fiat_fw-la voluntas_fw-la non_fw-la mea_fw-la sed_fw-la tua_fw-la thy_o will_n not_o my_o will_n be_v do_v for_o those_o reason_n allege_v little_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d precation_n of_o good_a give_v to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o establish_v they_o which_o have_v it_o weak_a in_o they_o increase_v it_o in_o they_o that_o have_v it_o but_o little_a 2._o the_o second_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o desire_v of_o something_o that_o be_v good_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a in_o the_o psalm_n than_o this_o 1._o give_v i_o a_o true_a understanding_n 2._o so_o psal_n 68.28_o establish_v the_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o 3._o so_o in_o luke_n domine_fw-la adaugenobis_fw-la fidem_fw-la lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n so_o that_o in_o these_o three_o 1._o that_o it_o be_v give_v 2._o that_o it_o be_v establish_v 3._o that_o it_o be_v increase_v in_o we_o be_v this_o kind_n of_o prayer_n contain_v concern_v this_o petition_n of_o good_a because_o we_o have_v it_o so_o seldom_o grant_v christ_n saying_n be_v verify_v mat._n 20.22_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o son_n of_o zebede_n be_v you_o ask_v you_o know_v not_o what_o so_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o such_o that_o desire_v that_o good_a which_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o their_o own_o humour_n then_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n chrysostome_n report_v of_o a_o thief_n qui_fw-la orabat_fw-la deum_fw-la be_v not_o mind_v notwithstanding_o to_o become_v true_a ut_fw-la non_fw-la capere●ur_fw-la &_o eo_fw-la citius_fw-la capiebatur_fw-la that_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v take_v and_o his_o prayer_n be_v a_o occasion_n that_o he_o be_v the_o soon_o take_v therefore_o our_o rule_n must_v be_v that_o 1_o john_n 5.14_o quicquid_fw-la secundum_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la ejus_fw-la petimus_fw-la whatsoever_o we_o ask_v according_a to_o his_o will_n he_o will_v hear_v we_o i._o whereof_o we_o have_v promise_n in_o his_o word_n and_o those_o in_o degree_n too_o as_o psal_n 27.4_o unum_fw-la petii_fw-la a_o jehouâ_fw-la one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n i_o one_o thing_n above_o the_o rest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n luke_o 11.13_o interpret_v to_o be_v that_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o with_o these_o or_o after_o these_o we_o may_v pray_v for_o temporal_a good_a thing_n gen._n 28.20_o jacobs_n prayer_n be_v that_o he_o may_v have_v soode_n and_o raymeni_fw-la and_o prov._n 30.8_o give_v i_o not_o poverty_n nor_o riches_n but_o sufficientiam_fw-la victus_fw-la a_o sufficiency_n only_o and_o austin_n say_v non_fw-la indecenter_n petit_fw-fr quia_fw-la eam_fw-la petit_fw-la &_o non_fw-la amplius_fw-la it_o be_v no_o misbeseem_v prayer_n because_o he_o ask_v but_o for_o so_o much_o and_o no_o more_o else_o we_o must_v desire_v this_o with_o a_o condition_n as_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v it_o be_v yet_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v so_o 2_o sam._n 15.25_o king_n david_n to_o zadok_v the_o petition_n of_o a_o kingdom_n if_o i_o have_v find_v favour_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v bring_v i_o again_o etc._n etc._n if_o not_o and_o if_o it_o be_v best_a for_o i_o to_o resign_v here_o i_o be_o let_v he_o do_v what_o he_o will_n there_o be_v no_o way_n more_o compendious_a nor_o soon_o to_o obtain_v then_o to_o resign_v over_o into_o his_o hand_n for_o divise_v mean_n and_o struggle_v he_o suffer_v not_o to_o obtain_v resignation_n be_v the_o best_a part_n now_o that_o we_o say_v before_o to_o fall_v into_o this_o omnis_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la what_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o it_o because_o it_o may_v be_v best_a expound_v here_o it_o seem_v a_o strange_a thing_n that_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v shall_v receive_v and_o whatsoever_o we_o desire_v we_o shall_v
conclusion_n to_o set_v down_o that_o when_o all_o the_o world_n have_v forsake_v god_n therefore_o to_o love_n god_n the_o more_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o worldly_a man_n while_o there_o be_v a_o like_n his_o like_n go_v with_o other_o man_n like_n but_o when_o a_o man_n can_v continue_v his_o affection_n so_o that_o his_o love_n be_v when_o other_o mislike_v and_o the_o more_o a_o thing_n be_v hate_v the_o more_o he_o will_v love_v it_o this_o be_v a_o good_a sign_n t●tus_fw-la 6_o if_o we_o can_v say_v as_o the_o church_n sa●●h_v c●nt_fw-la 8_o 7._o m●ch_o water_n can_v quench_v love_n neither_o can_v the_o flood_n drown_v it_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v give_v all_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o h●use_n for_o love_n they_o will_v great_o contemn_v it_o that_o it_o be_v str●nger_a than_o death_n i._n when_o any_o affliction_n come_v it_o be_v strong_a than_o it_o he_o that_o love_v for_o his_o own_o commodity_n fear_v ●est_n the_o quantity_n of_o that_o he_o love_v be_v diminish_v in_o concupiscence_n quo_fw-la quis_fw-la vult_fw-la l●men_fw-la suu●n_fw-la there_o the_o few_o the_o better_a but_o in_o b●no_fw-la ●●●●●l●niiae_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la vult_fw-la u●lle_fw-la att●●tus_fw-la there_o we_o wish_v that_o all_o have_v he_o deus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la eo_fw-la inunis_fw-la cuique_fw-la t●tus_fw-la 6._o the_o last_o sign_n be_v out_o of_o cant._n 8.7.8_o that_o the_o true_a love_n can_v abide_v trial_n and_o false_a love_n can_v abide_v it_o the_o heathen_a man_n say_v falsus_fw-la amor_fw-la inde_fw-la fugit_fw-la unde_fw-la probatur_fw-la false_a love_n will_v not_o stand_v the_o trial_n but_o when_o water_n can_v quench_v it_o nor_o fire_n consume_v it_o and_o we_o can_v be_v content_v to_o forego_v all_o and_o our_o jealousy_n can_v wrestle_v with_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n and_o overcom_v they_o than_o we_o may_v say_v as_o christ_n say_v john_n 15.13_o great_a love_n than_o this_o can_v be_v the_o six_o precept_n as_o we_o must_v ourselves_o love_n god_n so_o likewise_o we_o must_v be_v desirous_a to_o bring_v other_o to_o his_o love_n and_o here_o appear_v the_o difference_n between_o amor_fw-la mercenarius_fw-la &_o gratuitus_fw-la that_o love_n which_o be_v mercenary_a and_o that_o which_o be_v free_a for_o in_o the_o former_a because_o a_o man_n seek_v his_o own_o profit_n he_o be_v loath_a that_o another_o shall_v love_v that_o that_o he_o love_v and_o have_v any_o part_n with_o he_o lest_o by_o the_o communicate_v of_o that_o thing_n to_o other_o it_o shall_v be_v restrain_v to_o himself_o thereof_o come_v jealousy_n but_o in_o the_o other_o where_o our_o own_o commodity_n be_v not_o seek_v where_o we_o wish_v not_o our_o own_o good_a but_o good_a to_o he_o who_o we_o love_v for_o himself_o there_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o communicate_v all_o the_o good_a thing_n we_o have_v so_o as_o that_o all_o man_n may_v have_v they_o in_o common_a so_o they_o that_o love_v god_n will_v bring_v all_o man_n to_o love_v that_o they_o love_v for_o itself_o and_o yet_o all_o in_o whole_a ps_n 31.24_o the_o prophet_n show_v his_o good_a mind_n in_o this_o point_n i._n he_o desire_v to_o draw_v all_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n ps_n 31.26_o o_o love_v the_o lord_n all_o you_o his_o saint_n etc._n etc._n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a psal_n 139.21_o that_o be_v also_o a_o sign_n of_o love_n lord_n do_v not_o i_o have_v they_o that_o hate_v thou_o yea_o i_o hate_v they_o with_o a_o perfect_a haired_a as_o though_o they_o be_v my_o enemy_n and_o have_v do_v i_o injury_n psal_n 94.16_o he_o to_o draw_v all_o man_n into_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o lord_n enemy_n there_o his_o challenge_n be_v who_o will_v rise_v up_o with_o i_o against_o the_o wicked_a or_o who_o will_v take_v my_o part_n against_o the_o evil_a doer_n and_o as_o he_o will_v take_v part_n himself_o against_o they_o so_o he_o labour_v that_o other_o will_v join_v with_o he_o the_o second_o principal_a sign_n as_o proper_a effect_n of_o love_n be_v obedien●●_n &_o patience_n obedience_n obedientia_fw-la obedience_n there_o be_v no_o say_n of_o all_o the_o father_n of_o great_a use_n then_o that_o of_o gregory_n probatio_fw-la d●lectionis_fw-la exhibitio_fw-la est_fw-la operis_fw-la and_o that_o indeed_o be_v a_o true_a sign_n of_o love_n when_o it_o work_v for_o the_o will_n be_v inflame_v with_o this_o affection_n and_o have_v the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o part_n and_o power_n of_o the_o body_n and_o mind_n necessary_a it_o be_v that_o wheresoever_o desire_n in_o the_o will_n take_v hold_v it_o must_v elicere_fw-la motum_fw-la cause_n motion_n as_o if_o a_o man_n be_v give_v to_o the_o love_n of_o wine_n that_o love_n kindle_v in_o he_o a_o desire_n to_o have_v it_o and_o that_o desire_n do_v elicere_fw-la motum_fw-la that_o he_o may_v work_v and_o earn_v so_o much_o money_n and_o after_o still_o he_o work_v to_o get_v a_o vessel_n or_o bottle_n till_o he_o may_v have_v that_o too_o this_o active_a part_n do_v depend_v thus_o of_o love_n john_n 14.15_o if_o you_o love_v i_o as_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n show_v it_o by_o your_o obedience_n keep_v my_o commandment_n 1_o john_n 2.3_o if_o a_o man_n obey_v not_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o love_n that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v god_n equal_a obedience_n the_o proper_a effect_n of_o love_n among_o they_o that_o be_v unequal_a but_o not_o equal_a we_o must_v understand_v that_o where_o the_o party_n be_v equal_a between_o who_o love_n be_v that_o mutual_a affection_n be_v call_v amicitia_fw-la friendship_n but_o where_o one_o party_n be_v superior_a there_o they_o be_v not_o call_v friend_n though_o the_o prince_n on_o her_o part_n and_o good_a will_n call_v other_o so_o but_o they_o proper_o call_v it_o obseruantiam_fw-la observance_n the_o very_a natural_a actus_n whereof_o be_v obedience_n john_n 15.15_o christ_n call_v we_o his_o friend_n and_o by_o the_o near_a name_n of_o consanguinity_n matth._n 12.49_o yet_o paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n presume_v not_o upon_o those_o title_n but_o acknowledge_v this_o observantia_fw-la and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o epistle_n and_o writing_n entitle_v themselves_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n rom._n 6.16_o paul_n say_v look_v who_o you_o obey_v his_o servant_n you_o be_v so_o of_o this_o duty_n this_o be_v the_o perfect_a sign_n of_o obedience_n obedience_n the_o order_n of_o the_o petition_n show_v the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o so_o consequent_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o glory_n that_o god_n have_v by_o our_o obedience_n now_o the_o apply_v of_o obedience_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n in_o our_o petition_n that_o be_v first_o that_o god_n name_n may_v be_v hallow_v and_o glorify_v how_o if_o he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o if_o he_o bear_v rule_v over_o we_o how_o shall_v this_o kingdom_n and_o rule_n be_v establish_v if_o we_o fulfil_v his_o will_n here_o in_o earth_n as_o his_o angel_n do_v in_o heaven_n and_o so_o be_v his_o name_n glorify_v and_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a as_o that_o gen._n 2.17_o god_n for_o his_o glory_n appoint_v in_o paradise_n the_o obedience_n of_o adam_n when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o state_n and_o therefore_o ordain_v a_o commandment_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n that_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o that_o prescript_n his_o glory_n may_v be_v show_v two_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n two_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n come_v either_o direct_o from_o we_o to_o he_o or_o by_o other_o from_o we_o psal_n 50.15_o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trouble_n and_o i_o will_v hear_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o this_o be_v for_o every_o one_o that_o be_v for_o the_o first_o glorify_v but_o be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o matth._n 5.16_o 2._o god_n will_v have_v glory_n of_o we_o both_o mediate_o and_o immediate_o jam._n 2._o so_o let_v your_o light_a shine_n that_o other_o man_n see_v your_o good_a work_n may_v glorify_v your_o father_n for_o your_o sake_n there_o be_v that_o by_o other_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v for_o we_o which_o be_v the_o second_o justification_n the_o first_o be_v to_o he_o by_o faith_n alone_o but_o the_o other_o before_o man_n by_o such_o work_n as_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v by_o they_o and_o so_o other_o by_o they_o reconcile_v to_o god_n this_o glory_n come_v to_o god_n now_o for_o manner_n augustin_n si_fw-mi mores_fw-la christianorum_fw-la sint_fw-la amabiles_fw-la neque_fw-la quicquam_fw-la facit_fw-la bonos_fw-es vel_fw-la malos_fw-la mores_fw-la nisi_fw-la boni_fw-la vel_fw-la mali_fw-la amores_fw-la for_o amor_fw-la male_a inflamman_n &_o timor_fw-la male_a humilians_fw-la if_o the_o manner_n of_o christian_n be_v any_o way_n amiable_a we_o must_v
sell_v they_o at_o otherwise_o as_o it_o be_v in_o zach._n 11.12_o the_o prophet_n in_o christ_n person_n say_v let_v we_o see_v what_o you_o will_v value_v i_o at_o &_o they_o weigh_v for_o my_o wage_n 30._o piece_n of_o silver_n and_o what_o he_o esteem_v of_o the_o price_n we_o see_v he_o turn_v it_o over_o to_o the_o potter_n a_o goodly_a price_n for_o i_o to_o be_v value_v at_o of_o they_o a_o price_n more_o fit_a to_o buy_v potsherd_n there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o price_n set_v on_o we_o god_n have_v not_o value_v we_o at_o so_o small_a a_o rate_n whatsoever_o we_o esteem_v of_o the_o truth_n or_o christ_n we_o to_o know_v how_o god_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v be_v how_o he_o and_o christ_n esteem_v we_o 1_o pet._n 1.18_o as_o no_o corruptible_a thing_n neither_o silver_n nor_o gold_n can_v buy_v we_o 1_o cor._n 6.20_o empti_fw-la estis_fw-la precio_fw-la magno_fw-la you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o great_a price_n more_o than_o 30._o piece_n of_o silver_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o shall_v have_v go_v rather_o than_o he_o if_o it_o will_v have_v serve_v therefore_o we_o must_v so_o price_n he_o for_o he_o be_v the_o truth_n that_o no_o corruptible_a thing_n buy_v we_o from_o christ_n the_o sign_n of_o true_a religion_n likewise_o be_v handle_v before_o these_o four_o 1._o if_o it_o ascribe_v to_o god_n alone_o all_o thing_n and_o give_v no_o part_n to_o any_o other_o 2._o if_o it_o favour_v not_o man_n in_o any_o of_o his_o corrupt_a desire_n but_o urge_v the_o contempt_n of_o father_n mother_n friend_n and_o himself_o and_o all_o 3._o if_o it_o be_v mere_o spiritual_a and_o have_v no_o mixture_n that_o be_v the_o decay_n of_o religion_n judaismo_fw-la mixtio_fw-la theolog_fw-la ●um_o philosoph_n judaismo_fw-la the_o 1._o in_o col._n 2.8_o the_o mingle_n of_o religion_n with_o the_o error_n of_o philosophy_n aug._n call_v they_o very_o well_o orationes_fw-la philosophorum_fw-la acute_a abtusae_fw-la and_o thus_o as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o origen_n witness_n plato_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aristotelean_n by_o divers_a platonist_n converse_v to_o religion_n so_o divers_a aristotelean_n and_o other_o error_n of_o the_o philosopher_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n and_o at_o length_n prevail_v 2._o the_o other_o be_v in_o tit._n 1.14_o of_o jewish_a fable_n i._o that_o part_n of_o judaisme_n that_o be_v abrogate_a more_o plain_o gal._n 4.9_o egena_fw-la &_o infirma_fw-la elementa_fw-la weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n i._o jewish_n ceremony_n and_o philosopher_n principle_n for_o these_o do_v the_o whore_n mingle_v in_o she_o cup._n he_o among_o the_o 20._o ●easons_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o affection_n if_o we_o have_v no_o end_n or_o reward_n but_o our_o eye_n only_o upon_o he_o 4._o last_o be_v penetratio_fw-la cordis_fw-la circumcisio_fw-la cordis_fw-la that_o that_o take_v away_o the_o circumcise_a skin_n of_o the_o heart_n this_o in_o its_o full_a extent_n give_v a_o marvellous_a scope_n to_o non_fw-la concupisces_fw-la for_o sincerity_n of_o affection_n 1._o psal_n 73.24_o john_n 21.15_o in_o the_o psalm_n he_o say_v who_o do_v i_o respect_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n but_o thou_o i._o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o end_n but_o god_n but_o the_o other_o place_n diligis_fw-la i_o plus_fw-la he_o love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o then_o these_o thing_n here_o on_o earth_n or_o else_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o aright_o for_o if_o we_o come_v not_o to_o that_o certain_o look_v how_o far_o short_a we_o come_v of_o it_o so_o far_o be_v we_o short_a of_o true_a sincerity_n in_o of_o a_o example_n of_o a_o mixture_n that_o peter_n will_v have_v bring_v in_o the_o 6._o rule_n for_o the_o procure_n of_o it_o in_o other_o 1_o tim._n 6.14_o there_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o timothy_n and_o especial_o all_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o room_n of_o timothy_n keep_v the_o commandment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o spot_n without_o wrinkle_n gal._n 2.11_o though_o peter_n bring_v in_o judaisme_n withstand_v he_o to_o his_o face_n to_o hinder_v whatsoever_o corruption_n be_v bring_v or_o ready_a to_o be_v bring_v into_o our_o religion_n let_v any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o this_o coram_fw-la i_o be_v of_o no_o importance_n aug._n say_v that_o this_o coram_fw-la i_o magnam_fw-la habet_fw-la emphasim_fw-la i_o coram_fw-la i_o this_o addition_n coram_fw-la i_o have_v a_o great_a emphasie_n and_o force_v and_o indeed_o so_o great_a force_n as_o it_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o this_o commandment_n and_o the_o other_o three_o in_o this_o table_n the_o first_o rule_n here_o be_v that_o rom._n 7.14_o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a distinction_n 1._o for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a rule_n of_o it_o in_o rom._n 7.14_o 2._o it_o make_v two_o distinction_n this_o rule_n be_v ground_v on_o these_o word_n gnalpanai_o before_o i_o coram_fw-la fancy_n humana_fw-la &_o coram_fw-la luce_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n they_o fall_v into_o the_o exterior_a act_n but_o coram_fw-la tenebris_fw-la &_o coram_fw-la fancy_n dei_fw-la in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n they_o come_v only_o to_o the_o thought_n to_o the_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o proper_o pertain_v to_o this_o commandment_n and_o come_v only_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n esa_n 45.7_o he_o have_v frame_v the_o light_n and_o create_v the_o darkness_n therefore_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o he_o to_o see_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o light_n psal_n 94.9_o he_o make_v the_o eye_n and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o he_o see_v whatsoever_o the_o eye_n can_v see_v and_o by_o a_o further_a virtue_n by_o create_v and_o form_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n zach._n 21.1_o he_o see_v that_o the_o eye_n see_v not_o himself_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o maker_n to_o make_v any_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o himself_o but_o only_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n so_o that_o as_o aug._n say_v whether_o the_o candle_n burn_v or_o be_v put_v out_o he_o see_v and_o that_o which_o be_v above_o all_o these_o 1_o john_n 3.20_o he_o see_v more_o than_o our_o spirit_n can_v see_v in_o we_o though_o the_o heart_n can_v condemn_v we_o yet_o he_o can_v condemn_v we_o for_o he_o be_v great_a than_o our_o heart_n distinction_n the_o other_o distinction_n another_o thing_n touch_v this_o point_n in_o the_o moral_a philosophy_n of_o christian_n the_o distinction_n of_o bonum_fw-la apparens_fw-la &_o verum_fw-la good_a in_o appearance_n and_o true_a good_a this_o coram_fw-la i_o before_o i_o i._n god_n make_v it_o coram_fw-la homine_fw-la before_o man_n make_v it_o not_o for_o coram_fw-la homine_fw-la or_o any_o other_o coram_fw-la it_o argue_v nothing_o else_o but_o every_o thing_n as_o it_o appear_v but_o it_o can_v true_o be_v so_o except_o it_o be_v so_o to_o god_n that_o that_o appear_v so_o coram_fw-la fancy_n dei_fw-la that_o be_v so_o and_o for_o the_o better_a and_o plain_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o must_v know_v how_o ephes_n 3.16_o he_o divide_v man_n every_o one_o be_v divide_v into_o two_o man_n and_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v by_o plato_n before_o he_o whereby_o some_o gather_v that_o he_o have_v read_v he_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o outward_a man_n and_o the_o inward_a man_n now_o whether_o of_o these_o two_o please_v god_n he_o himself_o show_v speak_v of_o himself_o 1_o sam._n 16.7_o samuel_n have_v a_o like_n to_o saul_n countenance_n and_o high_a and_o comely_a stature_n man_n look_v into_o the_o eye_n or_o face_n or_o comeliness_n of_o body_n but_o god_n look_v not_o as_o man_n look_v he_o look_v into_o the_o heart_n and_o consequent_o because_o he_o look_v into_o the_o heart_n psal_n 51.6_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v that_o he_o require_v truth_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n be_v it_o that_o luke_n 17.21_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n begin_v within_o we_o and_o not_o as_o certain_a pharisee_n like_v who_o look_v only_o to_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o dish_n and_o rest_n in_o some_o external_a piece_n of_o god_n worship_n it_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o god_n especial_o look_v at_o for_o first_o there_o be_v the_o principal_a rule_n of_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n set_v subdue_a our_o will_n unto_o god_n will_n there_o be_v in_o we_o a_o corrupt_a affection_n of_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o our_o desire_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o desire_n of_o god_n we_o desire_v only_o to_o seem_v as_o 1_o sam._n 15.30_o yet_o honour_v i_o i_o pray_v thou_o before_o the_o elder_n of_o my_o people_n and_o before_o israel_n that_o he_o may_v seem_v before_o they_o to_o be_v in_o good_a state_n
down_o under_o they_o both_o he_o become_v a_o peasant_n 2._o another_o sign_n like_a to_o this_o but_o it_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n look_v how_o we_o be_v there_o sign_n when_o a_o man_n receive_v comfort_n under_o the_o cross_n by_o that_o that_o he_o have_v do_v out_o of_o the_o cross_n a_o good_a sign_n so_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n that_o will_v bewray_v what_o our_o heart_n be_v 2_o king_n 20.3_o there_o be_v a_o cross_n that_o dismay_v not_o hezekiah_n why_o because_o he_o know_v that_o in_o his_o health_n he_o walk_v aright_o before_o god_n but_o contra_fw-la psal_n 22.14_o it_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o man_n body_n like_o melt_a wax_n other_o 1._o a_o detestation_n of_o sin_n in_o ourselves_o and_o in_o other_o 3._o gen._n 38.14_o by_o the_o example_n of_o judah_n that_o if_o the_o like_a hatred_n of_o any_o sin_n be_v in_o himself_o or_o rather_o great_a when_o he_o do_v no_o less_o punish_v it_o in_o himself_o then_o in_o other_o if_o it_o be_v the_o case_n of_o thamar_n then_o to_o cry_v away_o with_o she_o to_o the_o fire_n let_v she_o be_v burn_v but_o we_o see_v a_o strange_a and_o sudden_a alteration_n in_o vers_fw-la 26._o if_o it_o be_v his_o own_o case_n than_o he_o say_v sure_o i_o be_o not_o so_o righteous_a as_o she_o be_v this_o fall_v much_o into_o the_o account_n as_o the_o heathen_a man_n say_v of_o anthony_n and_o his_o fellow_n ourselves_o brutus_n &_o cassius_n the_o true_a hatred_n of_o sin_n must_v begin_v at_o ourselves_o that_o they_o do_v odisse_fw-la tyrannum_fw-la but_o not_o tyrannidem_fw-la hate_v the_o traitor_n but_o not_o the_o treason_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o true_a hatred_n of_o sin_n must_v begin_v of_o ourselves_o yea_o and_o that_o for_o the_o least_o as_o rom._n 7.24_o the_o apostle_n for_o concupiscence_n in_o himself_o we_o see_v what_o a_o great_a hatred_n and_o grief_n he_o fall_v into_o that_o he_o cry_v out_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v etc._n etc._n 4._o the_o last_o may_v be_v this_o it_o be_v somewhat_o a_o hard_a sign_n if_o there_o be_v any_o man_n that_o can_v say_v the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o psal_n 139._o a_o excellent_a psalm_n in_o this_o behalf_n if_o he_o can_v say_v it_o without_o pant_v of_o his_o heart_n and_o fear_v or_o change_v of_o the_o affection_n prove_v i_o and_o try_v i_o o_o lord_n etc._n etc._n if_o any_o dare_v take_v this_o upon_o he_o if_o he_o deceive_v not_o his_o own_o heart_n it_o be_v upright_o but_o a_o gentle_a than_o this_o psal_n 7.3_o where_o he_o say_v if_o my_o heart_n be_v not_o true_a and_o sound_a in_o this_o respect_n then_o let_v i_o feel_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n then_o let_v the_o enemy_n persecute_v i_o etc._n etc._n or_o when_o psal_n 4.4_o when_o a_o man_n enter_v into_o his_o chamber_n can_v say_v as_o my_o heart_n have_v be_v upright_o before_o thou_o so_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v help_v in_o my_o great_a need_n and_o to_o be_v comfort_v in_o the_o last_o gasp_n so_o to_o offer_v up_o obedience_n within_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o true_a sign_n 6._o rule_n for_o the_o procure_n of_o it_o in_o other_o 6._o reg._n 6._o we_o have_v the_o apostle_n desire_v and_o commandment_n phil._n 1.10_o and_o the_o example_n we_o have_v in_o the_o friend_n of_o job_n though_o after_o a_o corrupt_a manner_n for_o though_o they_o take_v a_o wrong_a course_n yet_o the_o desire_n be_v good_a to_o see_v that_o his_o heart_n be_v upright_o haec_fw-la de_fw-fr integraute_fw-fr perseverance_n the_o knit_n up_o of_o all_o be_v to_o persevere_v perseverance_n it_o stand_v first_o perseverantia_fw-la perseverantia_fw-la non_fw-la habebis_fw-la or_o non_fw-la erunt_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o have_v or_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v but_o in_o the_o order_n of_o handle_v have_v the_o last_o place_n because_o it_o have_v the_o shut_n up_o of_o all_o it_o be_v in_o the_o word_n non_fw-la erunt_fw-la which_o will_v not_o be_v answer_v with_o non_fw-la sunt_fw-la or_o non_fw-la habui_fw-la or_o non_fw-la habeo_fw-la but_o this_o must_v answer_v it_o non_fw-la habebo_fw-la i_o will_v never_o have_v any_o other_o god_n and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n than_o many_o do_v imagine_v fui_fw-la sum_fw-la and_o ero_fw-la be_v the_o note_n of_o the_o three_o time_n sure_o every_o man_n examine_v these_o three_o time_n shall_v find_v that_o fui_fw-la the_o time_n past_a to_o remember_v be_v a_o sorrowful_a thing_n and_o as_o bernard_n say_v recordare_fw-la praeteriti_fw-la &_o erubesce_v it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n for_o we_o to_o remember_v what_o we_o have_v be_v in_o sum_n the_o present_a time_n peradventure_o there_o may_v be_v comfort_n because_o we_o strive_v to_o attain_v but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v ero_fw-la the_o future_a time_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o consider_v in_o what_o case_n he_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o and_o what_o his_o latter_a end_n shall_v be_v whether_o god_n will_v forsake_v he_o as_o he_o have_v do_v many_o that_o have_v be_v in_o as_o good_a and_o peradventure_o in_o better_a case_n than_o he_o be_v and_o therefore_o non_fw-la erunt_fw-la be_v a_o sharp_a commandment_n we_o place_v it_o last_o and_o this_o be_v the_o natural_a order_n for_o it_o to_o come_v in_o here_o both_o because_o the_o heathen_a have_v see_v it_o that_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o end_n or_o last_o part_n of_o fortitude_n be_v perseverance_n and_o because_o that_o all_o virtue_n be_v preserve_v by_o this_o or_o to_o allude_v to_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n powder_v with_o it_o as_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o abijam_fw-la king_n of_o juda_n to_o jeroboam_fw-la of_o israel_n ought_v you_o not_o to_o know_v that_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n have_v give_v the_o kingdom_n over_o israel_n to_o david_n forever_o that_o be_v to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o son_n by_o a_o covenant_n of_o salt_n by_o serve_v he_o in_o a_o covenant_n of_o salt_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o be_v that_o every_o virtue_n shall_v not_o be_v as_o summer_n fruit_n but_o as_o a_o virtue_n conserve_v and_o powder_v there_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n without_o salt_n in_o the_o type_n of_o the_o law_n now_o the_o reason_n be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o end_n that_o god_n look_v at_o in_o all_o our_o action_n by_o our_o perseurance_n be_v make_v know_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o performance_n otherwise_o the_o hypocrite_n may_v go_v for_o a_o true_a professor_n god_n 2._o it_o please_v god_n to_o make_v a_o propotrion_n in_o every_o virtue_n to_o some_o quality_n in_o god_n but_o another_o and_o peculiar_a to_o this_o for_o there_o be_v in_o every_o virtue_n a_o conform_v of_o ourselves_o to_o some_o attribute_n in_o god_n as_o in_o our_o knowledge_n to_o his_o wisdom_n in_o our_o belief_n to_o his_o truth_n in_o our_o sear_n to_o his_o justice_n in_o love_n to_o his_o mercy_n in_o integrity_n to_o his_o ubiquity_n and_o in_o our_o perseverance_n to_o his_o eternity_n because_o he_o revel_n 1.8_o be_v α_n and_o ω_fw-gr the_o beginning_n and_o end_v which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o perseverance_n so_o we_o according_a to_o our_o quamdiu_fw-la begnadi_fw-la till_o i_o die_v usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la and_o as_o he_o say_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o smyrna_n revel_v 2.10_o not_o only_o to_o natural_a death_n but_o also_o to_o violent_a death_n heb._n 12.4_o there_o be_v another_o usque_fw-la and_o that_o usque_fw-la include_v blood_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la so_o do_v the_o apostle_n resolve_v it_o act_n 21.13_o i_o be_o ready_a not_o only_o to_o be_v bind_v but_o also_o to_o die_v at_o jerusalem_n this_o be_v our_o ω_fw-gr and_o howsoever_o or_o wheresoever_o our_o α_n be_v place_v this_o must_v be_v our_o ω_fw-gr this_o must_v be_v our_o eternity_n even_o till_o i_o die_v otherwise_o as_o bernard_n say_v quid_fw-la levitati_fw-la &_o aeternitati_fw-la there_o be_v no_o fellowship_n of_o god_n and_o man_n without_o perseverance_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n against_o our_o nature_n as_o we_o have_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o last_o affection_n a_o desire_n to_o seem_v rather_o than_o to_o be_v because_o it_o be_v easy_a and_o we_o love_v ease_v so_o here_o we_o have_v a_o affection_n that_o be_v of_o a_o back-starting_a bow_n psal_n 78.5.8_o as_o he_o describe_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o israelite_n forward_o we_o have_v often_o a_o desire_n to_o start_v back_o so_o that_o it_o come_v to_o be_v a_o pain_n to_o go_v forward_o and_o of_o all_o to_o be_v like_o a_o bow_n that_o be_v bend_v almost_o and_o let_v it_o go_v never_o so_o little_a and_o it_o start_v back_o again_o or_o as_o gal._n 6.9_o no_o less_o excellent_a by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._o to_o feel_v a_o grudge_n in_o our_o
visitation_n be_v for_o justice_n so_o here_o shall_v have_v be_v merces_fw-la and_o not_o misericordia_fw-la not_o mercy_n but_o wage_n but_o our_o reward_n do_v argue_v non_fw-la mercedem_fw-la but_o gratuitum_fw-la amorem_fw-la not_o wage_n but_o mercy_n now_o that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o work_n &_o operans_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la and_o the_o other_o i.e._n his_o justice_n but_o a_o visitation_n i._n e._n a_o thing_n intermit_v that_o be_v also_o a_o special_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o justice_n be_v restrain_v to_o the_o four_o generation_n and_o his_o mercy_n be_v extend_v to_o thousand_o so_o here_o be_v a_o proportion_n the_o one_o contain_v the_o other_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o time_n not_o that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v great_a than_o his_o justice_n but_o because_o he_o be_v more_o delight_v in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o one_o then_o of_o the_o other_o the_o reward_n be_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o the_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v according_a to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v jealous_a for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v jealous_a for_o he_o that_o we_o may_v say_v as_o 1_o king_n 19.20_o elias_n zelo_fw-la zelatus_fw-la sum_fw-la i_o have_v be_v very_o jealous_a for_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n sake_n zelantes_fw-la potiùs_fw-la quàm_fw-la amantes_fw-la the_o trial_n of_o this_o love_n consist_v in_o keep_v the_o commandment_n i._n e._n that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o commandment_n it_o be_v not_o from_o he_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o be_v without_o they_o be_v not_o from_o love_n another_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o speech_n and_o the_o true_a sign_n of_o love_v he_o have_v be_v the_o keep_n of_o he_o but_o he_o say_v not_o so_o but_o the_o keep_n of_o my_o commandment_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v himself_o and_o need_v not_o our_o keep_n therefore_o he_o have_v set_v our_o love_n to_o be_v try_v by_o two_o thing_n first_o by_o mandata_fw-la or_o praecepta_fw-la mea_fw-la his_o commandment_n second_o &_o minimos_fw-la istos_fw-la his_o little_a one_o for_o the_o commandment_n it_o be_v say_v mandata_fw-la we_o keep_v he_o in_o his_o par●●●●●_n and_o his_o love_n in_o mandata_fw-la hosea_n 4.10_o that_o they_o keep_v they_o not_o 2._o for_o the_o other_o mat._n 25.45_o quandiu_fw-la uni_fw-la ex_fw-la istis_fw-la minimis_fw-la non_fw-la fecistis_fw-la neque_fw-la mihi_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o and_o the_o three_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o our_o estimation_n of_o they_o must_v be_v such_o that_o we_o think_v they_o worth_a the_o keep_n as_o psal_n 19.10_o david_n account_v of_o they_o as_o dear_o as_o of_o much_o fine_a gold_n of_o ophir_n and_o psal_n 119.72_o thy_o law_n be_v dear_a to_o i_o then_o thousand_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n for_o keep_v by_o this_o word_n keeper_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o god_n have_v make_v we_o keeper_n of_o his_o commandment_n now_o the_o property_n and_o charge_n of_o a_o keeper_n be_v to_o preserve_v that_o thing_n that_o he_o keep_v as_o from_o himself_o so_o from_o other_o and_o to_o see_v and_o have_v regard_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o lose_v by_o negligence_n nor_o cast_v away_o nor_o break_v nor_o hurt_n but_o keep_v sound_n till_o his_o come_n that_o give_v they_o to_o he_o in_o charge_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o god_n commandment_n 1._o king_n 20.40_o for_o the_o break_n of_o they_o mat._n 5.19_o whosoever_o shall_v break_v the_o least_o of_o these_o commandment_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v call_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o a_o contemptuous_a threaten_n be_v psal_n 50.17_o now_o that_o they_o may_v be_v safe_o keep_v and_o as_o it_o be_v prov._n 4.21_o it_o be_v best_o to_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o that_o place_n that_o be_v sure_a even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o heart_n for_o the_o keep_n in_o regard_n of_o other_o we_o must_v not_o say_v as_o cain_n of_o abel_n sumne_n ego_fw-la custos_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_o i_o my_o brother_n keeper_n for_o as_o cain_n shall_v have_v be_v keeper_n of_o his_o brother_n that_o other_o kill_v he_o not_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v keeper_n of_o god_n commandment_n that_o other_o break_v they_o not_o we_o must_v have_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n not_o only_a observanda_fw-la but_o also_o consenvanda_fw-mi not_o only_o observe_v but_o conserve_v they_o and_o if_o we_o perform_v this_o duty_n we_o shall_v do_v as_o they_o do_v prov._n 16.17_o he_o that_o keep_v they_o keep_v his_o own_o soul_n by_o they_o so_o much_o of_o the_o 2_o commandment_n the_o iii_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o etc._n etc._n the_o object_n of_o this_o commandment_n be_v the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o his_o glory_n the_o thing_n command_v be_v a_o reverend_a take_n of_o his_o name_n comprehend_v in_o this_o word_n praise_n and_o the_o proper_a place_n of_o god_n glory_n be_v in_o this_o commandment_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o object_n which_o be_v his_o name_n by_o the_o which_o he_o be_v glorify_v and_o this_o his_o glory_n be_v such_o as_o for_o it_o esa_n 43.7_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n for_o my_o own_o glory_n i_o create_v they_o and_o for_o this_o that_o which_o be_v before_o his_o creation_n his_o predestination_n ephes_n 1.6_o unto_o which_o we_o must_v join_v our_o praise_n now_o if_o they_o must_v be_v make_v like_o to_o their_o creator_n if_o the_o work_n must_v be_v according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o maker_n it_o be_v well_o therefore_o that_o end_n which_o move_v he_o to_o make_v we_o must_v be_v our_o end_n and_o therefore_o all_o our_o action_n and_o thought_n must_v come_v to_o this_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v 2._o thes_n 1.12_o that_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o you_o in_o the_o second_o commandment_n be_v these_o two_o respect_n first_o that_o the_o honour_n exhibit_v in_o outward_a behaviour_n be_v exhibit_v to_o one_o that_o be_v present_a second_o that_o the_o honour_n exhibit_v be_v give_v to_o the_o party_n himself_o for_o to_o he_o alone_o it_o must_v be_v do_v now_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o tongue_n which_o we_o call_v praise_n go_v beyond_o these_o and_o be_v most_o excellent_a for_o it_o be_v of_o he_o that_o be_v absent_a and_o to_o other_o and_o not_o to_o himself_o though_o god_n be_v present_v every_o where_o yet_o when_o we_o in_o our_o action_n and_o speech_n speak_v of_o he_o to_o other_o there_o be_v praise_n and_o so_o it_o go_v to_o he_o and_o yet_o there_o come_v a_o further_a portion_n of_o glory_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o true_a luk._n 14.8_o that_o honour_n be_v give_v to_o the_o person_n but_o also_o to_o his_o name_n psal_n 29.2_o give_v to_o god_n the_o glory_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n which_o give_v of_o glory_n be_v proper_o call_v praise_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v make_v a_o especial_a glorification_n of_o god_n psal_n 50._o vers_fw-la last_o he_o that_o offer_v i_o praise_n glorifi_v i_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v allone_n to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n and_o to_o give_v he_o praise_v now_o this_o praise_n have_v his_o proper_a place_n in_o our_o mouth_n psal_n 34.1_o with_o my_o mouth_n will_v i_o praise_v thou_o the_o instrument_n chief_a in_o this_o office_n be_v the_o tongue_n and_o by_o performance_n of_o this_o our_o tongue_n be_v make_v glorious_a psal_n 37.30_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o righteous_a will_v be_v talk_v of_o wisdom_n and_o his_o tongue_n will_v speak_v of_o judgement_n the_o manner_n how_o this_o praise_v be_v to_o be_v perform_v be_v set_v down_o in_o moses_n deut._n 32.3_o i_o will_v publish_v with_o my_o mouth_n give_v you_o glory_n to_o god_n i._n e._n one_o must_v report_v and_o they_o that_o hear_v must_v give_v glory_n to_o god_n now_o as_o be_v say_v before_o in_o the_o word_n glory_n according_o as_o it_o be_v take_v both_o in_o divinity_n and_o out_o of_o divinity_n there_o be_v more_o then_o either_o in_o honour_n praise_n or_o worship_n because_o all_o these_o be_v direct_v that_o the_o party_n on_o who_o they_o be_v bestow_v may_v be_v glorify_v and_o the_o matter_n of_o glory_n have_v proportion_n to_o claritas_fw-la the_o brightness_n in_o glass_n and_o in_o other_o such_o visible_a thing_n that_o as_o they_o be_v see_v a_o far_o off_o so_o that_o party_n to_o who_o such_o honour_n be_v give_v it_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o name_n a_o far_o off_o and_o know_v therefore_o for_o this_o cause_n in_o psal_n 66.2_o the_o prophet_n have_v exhort_v man_n to_o praise_v he_o go_v further_a and_o
thy_o child_n and_o have_v give_v they_o the_o earth_n to_o order_v it_o and_o they_o to_o come_v in_o part_n of_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o they_o have_v abuse_v thy_o inheritance_n and_o make_v it_o full_a of_o bramble_n and_o thistle_n and_o so_o seize_v and_o therefore_o have_v make_v themselves_o uncapable_a of_o honour_n it_o be_v better_a set_v down_o ezek._n 34.5_o you_o have_v not_o perform_v the_o service_n and_o duty_n therefore_o he_o say_v arise_v o_o lord_n and_o take_v the_o inheritance_n into_o thy_o hand_n thou_o will_v perform_v the_o charge_n before_o we_o come_v to_o particular_a duty_n here_o be_v two_o question_n to_o be_v handle_v for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o obedience_n hereafter_o to_o be_v handle_v answer_n quest_n 1._o answer_n first_o whether_o we_o owe_v honour_n to_o one_o that_o be_v evil_a i_o answer_v yea_o rom._n 9_o where_o the_o apostle_n reason_v in_o a_o like_a case_n that_o the_o unfaithfulnesse_n of_o a_o man_n can_v frustrate_v god_n promise_n so_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o person_n can_v take_v away_o the_o commandment_n nor_o make_v god_n ordinance_n void_a rom._n 13.1_o all_o power_n and_o ordinance_n be_v from_o god_n so_o no_o evil_a can_v make_v it_o void_a evil_n be_v twofold_a either_o which_o run_v to_o the_o punishment_n or_o to_o the_o fault_n 1._o for_o roughness_n or_o oppression_n 1_o pet._n 2.18_o obedience_n must_v be_v give_v to_o the_o crooked_a and_o froward_a i._o to_o such_o as_o holofernes_n judith_n 3.8_o such_o as_o nothing_o will_v please_v example_n gen._n 16.6_o of_o sarah_n and_o agar_n although_o sarah_n deal_v rough_o with_o agar_n yet_o the_o angel_n will_v she_o to_o return_v to_o her_o mistress_n and_o submit_v herself_o to_o she_o and_o as_o in_o the_o family_n so_o in_o the_o commonwealth_n it_o be_v know_v how_o saul_n deal_v with_o david_n yet_o psal_n 120._o v._n last_o he_o say_v he_o seek_v peace_n with_o those_o that_o love_v not_o peace_n i._o acknowledge_v submission_n offer_v no_o violence_n neither_o in_o the_o cave_n nor_o in_o the_o bed_n 2._o for_o the_o other_o wicked_a governor_n be_v they_o never_o so_o hard_a it_o be_v plain_a likewise_o that_o to_o they_o obedience_n and_o honour_n be_v due_a for_o as_o it_o be_v true_a hos_fw-la 10.3_o that_o god_n in_o ira_fw-la in_o his_o anger_n deni_v we_o a_o prince_n so_o also_o hos_fw-la 13.11_o he_o give_v a_o king_n in_o his_o wrath_n expound_v job_n 34.30_o that_o it_o be_v the_o people_n fault_n for_o their_o sin_n hos_fw-la 8.4_o it_o be_v his_o do_v because_o the_o people_n will_v have_v it_o so_o for_o when_o as_o they_o in_o election_n proceed_v not_o in_o timore_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o thing_n be_v not_o respect_v in_o themselves_o hos_fw-la 8.11_o because_o ephraim_n will_v have_v altar_n to_o sin_n they_o shall_v etc._n etc._n and_o because_o they_o will_v have_v a_o wicked_a man_n i_o will_v plague_v they_o etc._n etc._n so_o it_o come_v often_o by_o the_o people_n fault_n though_o the_o prince_n be_v evil_a see_v prov._n 21.1_o his_o heart_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o he_o can_v rule_v it_o as_o a_o vessel_n in_o the_o water_n he_o may_v as_o he_o have_v move_v divers_a evil_a king_n and_o they_o that_o have_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o good_a decree_n and_o purpose_n as_o belshasser_n and_o darius_n so_o though_o the_o prince_n remain_v good_a yet_o 2_o sam._n 24.1_o he_o suffer_v satan_n to_o prevail_v over_o he_o as_o over_o david_n here_o and_o as_o it_o be_v temporal_a so_o 1_o sam._n 16.14_o he_o take_v away_o his_o good_a spirit_n continual_o and_o a_o evil_a spirit_n be_v send_v of_o he_o on_o saul_n so_o this_o be_v all_o one_o to_o make_v of_o a_o good_a prince_n a_o evil_a and_o to_o set_v up_o a_o evil_a prince_n at_o the_o first_o which_o though_o it_o be_v thus_o yet_o jer._n 27.7_o the_o monarchy_n which_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n have_v be_v his_o own_o kingdom_n &_o all_o other_o country_n will_v to_o serve_v he_o as_o likewise_o esay_n 10.5_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o wrath_n the_o king_n of_o assur_n be_v by_o he_o purposely_o send_v this_o be_v god_n do_v jer._n 29.7_o they_o must_v pray_v for_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o cap._n 27.7_o they_o must_v submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o and_o obey_v he_o so_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 1_o tim._n 2.1_o prayer_n for_o governor_n though_o no_o christian_n and_o 1_o pet._n 2.18_o obey_v the_o king_n nero_n and_o act._n 25.11_o appello_n caesarem_fw-la i_o appeal_v unto_o caesar_n paul_n use_v the_o benefit_n of_o his_o government_n refuse_v his_o deputy_n and_o appeal_v to_o nero_n himself_o only_o this_o add_v out_o chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o honour_n we_o give_v be_v do_v not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n himself_o we_o reverence_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o man_n not_o man_n so_o that_o honour_n be_v due_a not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o person_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o vizard_n that_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o the_o man_n person_n more_o plain_a ester_n 6.8_o haman_n counsel_v the_o king_n thus_o shall_v it_o be_v do_v to_o the_o man_n who_o the_o king_n will_v have_v honour_v he_o shall_v put_v on_o a_o robe_n of_o estate_n etc._n etc._n and_o mordecai_n a_o base_a man_n be_v so_o honour_v and_o yet_o return_v to_o his_o private_a estate_n the_o honour_n there_o be_v do_v to_o the_o king_n robe_n and_o crown_n not_o to_o the_o private_a man_n thus_o we_o must_v conceive_v of_o evil_a man_n that_o they_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o lord_n robe_n and_o crown_n to_o which_o we_o give_v honour_n not_o to_o the_o man_n the_o heathen_a emblem_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v a_o ass_n lade_v with_o the_o image_n of_o isis_n a_o goddess_n and_o the_o people_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_n but_o the_o inscription_n be_v non_fw-la tibi_fw-la sed_fw-la religioni_fw-la we_o worship_v not_o thou_o but_o the_o goddess_n this_o be_v one_o thing_n every_o one_o may_v bring_v down_o himselse_a yet_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o robe_n of_o estate_n another_o be_v this_o and_o that_o be_v plain_a by_o hose_n 13._o because_o be_v a_o government_n never_o so_o bad_a yet_o it_o be_v better_a than_o none_o at_o all_o oligarchia_fw-la better_o than_o anarchia_fw-la if_o in_o his_o wrath_n he_o give_v they_o a_o king_n yet_o in_o the_o fury_n of_o his_o wrath_n he_o take_v he_o away_o and_o make_v their_o plague_n great_a to_o leave_v they_o without_o a_o prince_n so_o much_o of_o this_o question_n ●_o quest_n ●_o the_o second_o question_n go_v a_o degree_n further_o utrum_fw-la malo_fw-la in_o malo_fw-la or_o ad_fw-la malum_fw-la sit_fw-la obediendum_fw-la whether_o a_o man_n do_v owe_v absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o wicked_a commandment_n of_o a_o wicked_a prince_n s●l_a s●l_a the_o resolution_n be_v negative_a absolute_a obedience_n be_v due_a only_a to_o god_n for_o the_o make_n plain_a of_o this_o place_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o now_o it_o come_v to_o the_o point_n for_o here_o he_o come_v to_o be_v nobis_fw-la rex_fw-la he_o now_o show_v himself_o a_o king_n while_o he_o be_v in_o his_o robe_n though_o he_o have_v the_o honour_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o nobis_fw-la rex_fw-la a_o king_n in_o deed_n for_o he_o be_v no_o further_o a_o king_n then_o quatenus_fw-la imperat_fw-la nobis_fw-la then_o so_o farforth_a as_o he_o command_v and_o rule_v over_o we_o therefore_o great_a heed_n be_v here_o to_o be_v have_v lest_o we_o be_v entangle_v in_o the_o action_n for_o the_o first_o entrance_n into_o this_o question_n the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v for_o they_o say_v that_o lex_fw-la charitatis_fw-la deo_fw-la the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o command_v we_o to_o obey_v he_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n therefore_o it_o be_v very_o good_a reason_n that_o this_o law_n of_o nature_n by_o which_o be_v father_n and_o mother_n shall_v not_o weaken_v but_o strengthen_v the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o can_v say_v when_o we_o do_v evil_a that_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v cause_n of_o it_o the_o second_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o because_o as_o we_o say_v before_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v to_o they_o and_o therefore_o their_o power_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o delegate_v from_o god_n so_o we_o may_v say_v out_o of_o prov._n 8.15_o there_o wisdom_n speak_v it_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n per_fw-la quod_fw-la reges_fw-la regnant_a by_o which_o king_n reign_n now_o per_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la by_o which_o any_o thing_n be_v that_o be_v the_o essence_n every_o superior_a he_o have_v something_o
of_o the_o ministry_n that_o the_o knit_n and_o build_v up_o of_o the_o faithful_a may_v be_v effect_v it_o be_v the_o not_o due_o consider_v this_o that_o bring_v the_o perturbance_n and_o confusion_n in_o the_o world_n that_o now_o be_v for_o whereas_o it_o be_v express_o set_v down_o that_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n for_o which_o we_o ought_v anhelare_fw-la to_o breathe_v after_o and_o esay_n 49.24_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o whole_a drift_n of_o the_o king_n to_o be_v nutritius_fw-la pater_fw-la a_o nurse_n father_n and_o of_o the_o queen_n to_o be_v nutrix_fw-la a_o nurse_n to_o the_o church_n and_o their_o duty_n to_o be_v whole_o nutrire_fw-la to_o do_v the_o part_n of_o a_o nurse_n that_o the_o church_n estate_n may_v be_v more_o glorious_a and_o by_o these_o they_o may_v be_v in_o best_a estate_n in_o stead_n of_o this_o as_o before_o they_o that_o be_v in_o high_a place_n ezek._n 11.3_o such_o think_v it_o to_o be_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o soak_v in_o their_o breath_n and_o seek_v their_o own_o ease_n and_o other_o think_v with_o jezebell_n 1_o king_n 21.7_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o listen_v and_o because_o foreign_a envasion_n tumult_n and_o broil_n will_v hinder_v this_o takeing_n and_o use_v their_o commodity_n therefore_o the_o next_o thing_n that_o come_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o 2_o king_n 20.9_o be_v only_o to_o care_n ut_fw-la sit_fw-la pax_fw-la tanti_fw-la in_o diebus_fw-la meis_fw-la to_o keep_v peace_n and_o so_o consequent_o the_o church_n of_o god_n lie_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o neglect_v and_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n where_o the_o subject_n also_o be_v such_o as_o psal_n 49._o last_o be_v make_v to_o be_v in_o honour_n yet_o come_v to_o be_v without_o understanding_n that_o be_v do_v know_v no_o other_o nor_o further_o bonum_fw-la but_o sensibile_fw-la their_o belly_n table_n and_o regard_n of_o furniture_n for_o their_o house_n it_o be_v as_o col._n 3.2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o mind_v earthly_a thing_n to_o have_v their_o conceit_n only_o on_o they_o or_o mat._n 16.26_o so_o they_o can_v find_v a_o commutation_n for_o their_o soul_n they_o have_v no_o mind_n of_o this_o mind_n of_o god_n or_o of_o god_n but_o only_o follow_v their_o sense_n and_o sensible_a thing_n and_o so_o have_v such_o a_o mind_n be_v willing_a to_o be_v govern_v according_o and_o so_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v come_v to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_v so_o that_o he_o himself_o must_v lay_v to_o his_o hand_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o set_v to_o his_o hand_n extraordinary_o he_o shall_v get_v none_o for_o when_o as_o 2_o cor._n 10._o paul_n have_v give_v out_o great_a word_n there_o of_o the_o ministry_n that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o cast_v down_o etc._n etc._n then_o verse_n 7._o he_o begin_v to_o say_v you_o look_v on_o thing_n after_o the_o outward_a appearance_n and_o pomp_n and_o then_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o it_o for_o the_o sensible_a glory_n and_o sensible_a sign_n of_o that_o glory_n as_o a_o sword_n etc._n etc._n they_o strike_v a_o terror_n into_o man_n mind_n but_o here_o it_o be_v not_o so_o because_o they_o measure_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o contemn_v they_o and_o so_o they_o deal_v with_o christ_n esay_n 53.2_o the_o prophet_n say_v they_o look_v on_o he_o and_o he_o seem_v to_o they_o to_o have_v neither_o form_n nor_o beauty_n that_o they_o shall_v desire_v he_o and_o so_o they_o despise_v he_o and_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o and_o so_o they_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o call_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o be_v so_o great_o magnify_v common_a contempt_n of_o the_o minister_n most_o common_a so_o then_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o familiar_a in_o the_o world_n than_o this_o luke_n 23.11_o herod_n account_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d set_v nought_o by_o he_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d scoff_n at_o he_o so_o that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o call_v not_o to_o be_v set_v by_o and_o to_o be_v scoff_v at_o whereas_o god_n have_v advance_v it_o and_o so_o under_o the_o law_n 2_o king_n 1.9_o ahaziahs_n his_o man_n in_o denision_n call_v eliah_n the_o man_n of_o god_n for_o why_o else_o shall_v he_o call_v for_o fire_n to_o consume_v they_o so_o 2_o king_n 9.11_o ahab_n his_o courtier_n when_o the_o prophet_n come_v to_o jehu_n about_o the_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n they_o say_v what_o do_v this_o mad_a fellow_n with_o thou_o &_o c_o so_o shall_v you_o see_v it_o to_o be_v where_o religion_n have_v not_o take_v deep_a root_n he_o which_o have_v the_o great_a work_n be_v pay_v with_o the_o great_a score_n only_o we_o be_v help_v in_o this_o with_o the_o distinction_n of_o david_n psal_n 52._o verse_n last_o that_o there_o be_v a_o bonum_fw-la a_o good_a by_o the_o contrary_a member_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o there_o be_v a_o bonum_fw-la coram_fw-la mundo_fw-la and_o a_o bonum_fw-la coram_fw-la sanctis_fw-la there_o be_v a_o good_a which_o seem_v so_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o good_a which_o be_v account_v so_o only_o by_o the_o saint_n i_o will_v praise_v thou_o o_o lord_n etc._n etc._n for_o thy_o saint_n like_v it_o well_o say_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n but_o not_o so_o proper_o as_o bonum_fw-la coram_fw-la sanctis_fw-la it_o be_v good_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o world_n will_v think_v as_o pharaoh_n do_v if_o a_o man_n shall_v sing_v or_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n he_o be_v idle_a as_o humour_n reign_v too_o much_o in_o he_o therefore_o he_o say_v thy_o saint_n like_o it_o well_o to_o this_o be_v the_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 10._o last_o it_o be_v not_o the_o well_o think_v of_o man_n that_o make_v it_o to_o be_v well_o think_v off_o but_o god_n like_n and_o the_o bonum_fw-la coram_fw-la sanctis_fw-la pastor_n duty_n of_o the_o pastor_n come_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o pastor_n where_o we_o will_v pass_v over_o the_o duty_n before_o that_o be_v bring_v of_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v handle_v under_o education_n ministry_n the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n the_o apostle_n heb._n 5.1_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n show_v the_o end_n of_o the_o ministry_n he_o be_v for_o man_n in_o stead_n of_o we_o wherein_o we_o be_v to_o deal_v with_o god_n he_o stand_v for_o the_o church_n now_o this_o be_v a_o honour_n no_o man_n must_v take_v it_o unto_o he_o unless_o he_o be_v call_v mat._n 25.14_o god_n calling_n be_v know_v by_o his_o talent_n that_o be_v give_v thus_o be_v inward_o by_o god_n talon_n call_v and_o have_v here_o be_v bring_v up_o and_o have_v 1_o tim._n 4.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n then_o we_o come_v to_o his_o duty_n we_o shall_v find_v they_o in_o john_n 10._o 1_o tim._n 3._o tit._n 1._o and_o from_o thence_o john_n 10._o there_o be_v four_o degree_n of_o minister_n three_o bad_a first_o a_o thief_n second_o mercenary_a three_o a_o wolf_n one_o good_a the_o good_a shepherd_n he_o distinguish_v they_o thus_o into_o call_v first_o lawful_a and_o second_o unlawful_a a_o thief_n have_v no_o lawful_a entrance_n as_o the_o second_o and_o three_o have_v for_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o usurpation_n and_o we_o all_o hold_v that_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v there_o that_o if_o he_o come_v not_o in_o according_a to_o christ_n institution_n by_o the_o door_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n and_o not_o bring_v his_o talon_n he_o be_v a_o usurper_n and_o thief_n as_o jer._n 23.21_o they_o run_v and_o i_o never_o send_v they_o they_o prophesy_v and_o i_o bid_v they_o not_o for_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n deut._n 16.19_o be_v pervert_v and_o wrest_v as_o there_o two_o way_n first_o per_fw-la gratiam_fw-la by_o favour_n of_o some_o great_a man_n or_o friend_n second_o per_fw-la munus_fw-la by_o a_o bribe_n that_o be_v as_o one_o say_v the_o bishop_n for_o the_o one_o fall_v down_o for_o a_o reward_n and_o he_o go_v over_o his_o back_n and_o the_o other_o go_v in_o at_o the_o low_a hole_n as_o allude_v to_o that_o of_o danae_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o shower_n of_o gold_n that_o fall_v into_o her_o lap_n etc._n etc._n these_o two_o way_n pervert_v this_o ordinance_n hence_o 1_o tim._n 5.22_o be_v cita_n impositie_n the_o sudden_a and_o unadvised_a imposition_n of_o hand_n that_o because_o he_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o commend_v he_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o examine_v he_o but_o for_o the_o gift_n of_o
17.15_o quem_fw-la deus_fw-la eligerit_fw-la who_o god_n shall_v choose_v else_o nought_o be_v injust_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la 1_o king_n 1.20_o bethsabee_n speech_n to_o david_n the_o eye_n of_o all_o israel_n be_v upon_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v tell_v they_o who_o shall_v sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n after_o he_o and_o verse_n 33._o he_o choose_v solomon_n and_o 1_o chron._n 28.5_o he_o say_v among_o all_o the_o son_n i_o have_v god_n have_v choose_v solomon_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o choose_v a_o man_n for_o his_o gift_n as_o if_o god_n have_v choose_v he_o every_o one_o must_v be_v choose_v for_o their_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n that_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n a_o second_o form_n deut._n 27.15_o &_o 1.13_o general_a to_o both_o he_o must_v be_v some_o of_o their_o own_o nation_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o of_o natural_a affection_n ground_v on_o education_n where_o a_o man_n have_v be_v breed_v he_o will_v be_v most_o profitable_a the_o second_o reason_n be_v act_v 26.3_o the_o reason_n of_o paul_n joy_n in_o that_o he_o shall_v answer_v before_o agrippa_n a_o great_a matter_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n these_o in_o general_n deut._n 27.1_o in_o any_o wise_a he_o shall_v not_o prepare_v he_o many_o horse_n nor_o bring_v the_o people_n again_o into_o egypt_n prince_n 4._o particular_a duty_n of_o the_o prince_n for_o to_o increase_v the_o man_n the_o particular_a duty_n of_o the_o prince_n deut._n 17.16_o four_o duty_n be_v set_v down_o first_o he_o must_v not_o be_v affect_v to_o egypt_n which_o be_v nutrix_fw-la idololatriae_fw-la the_o nursery_n of_o idolatry_n he_o must_v not_o favour_v false_a religion_n and_o if_o he_o do_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o king_n ver_fw-la 16._o second_o ver_fw-la 17._o not_o uxorius_fw-la it_o be_v a_o synecdoche_n whereby_o be_v mean_v he_o must_v not_o be_v voluptuous_a give_v to_o pleasure_n pro._n 3.3_o 4._o they_o must_v not_o meddle_v with_o wine_n and_o woman_n solomon_n pronounce_v woe_n against_o the_o land_n where_o prince_n be_v early_o at_o their_o banquet_n yea_o and_o late_o too_o three_o ver_fw-la 17._o no_o hourder_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n not_o covetous_a 1_o king_n 12.4_o it_o be_v salomon_n fault_n for_o he_o by_o his_o seven_o hundred_o wife_n and_o three_o hundred_o concubine_n make_v such_o a_o imposition_n on_o the_o land_n that_o when_o his_o son_n come_v to_o reign_v the_o subject_n come_v and_o tell_v he_o plain_o he_o shall_v not_o reign_v and_o be_v their_o king_n unless_o he_o will_v ease_v his_o father_n burden_n 1_o king_n 12._o thy_o father_n make_v our_o yoke_n grievous_a make_v thou_o it_o light_n and_o we_o will_v serve_v thou_o and_o ver_fw-la 16._o see_v themselves_o not_o regard_v say_v what_o portion_n have_v we_o in_o david_n we_o have_v no_o inheritance_n in_o the_o son_n of_o ishai_n to_o your_o tent_n o_o israel_n now_o look_v to_o thy_o own_o house_n david_n thing_n the_o prince_n to_o have_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o law_n &_o therein_o to_o learn_v three_o thing_n four_o vers_fw-la 18._o which_o be_v the_o first_o to_o be_v do_v because_o it_o be_v provision_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o must_v have_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o law_n in_o which_o he_o may_v learn_v three_o thing_n first_o to_o fear_n god_n second_o to_o show_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o 1._o in_o himself_o 2._o in_o the_o court_n 3._o in_o the_o whole_a country_n and_o the_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v humble_a and_o keep_v this_o law_n his_o throne_n shall_v last_v for_o ever_o as_o pro._n 29.14_o that_o will_v make_v sure_a succession_n as_o samuel_n tell_v saul_n 1_o sam._n 10.6_o dedit_fw-la deus_fw-la cor_fw-la aliud_fw-la god_n give_v he_o another_o heart_n how_o because_o he_o be_v there_o among_o prophet_n the_o mean_n be_v plain_a psal_n 2.10_o erudimini_fw-la reges_fw-la be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n etc._n etc._n christ_n mat._n 10.21_o give_v one_o that_o he_o like_v a_o lesson_n but_o his_o possession_n choke_v all_o so_o they_o choke_v learning_n and_o all_o other_o good_a thing_n hinc_fw-la illud_fw-la christi_fw-la how_o hard_o be_v it_o for_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o that_o be_v thus_o qualify_v be_v meet_v for_o a_o kingdom_n now_o be_v in_o his_o seat_n he_o must_v not_o think_v he_o be_v there_o by_o himself_o according_a to_o their_o stile_n caesar_n dei_fw-la gratia_fw-la etc._n etc._n caesar_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n so_o whereas_o the_o law_n distinguish_v potestas_fw-la into_o arbitraria_fw-la &_o delegata_fw-la power_n be_v either_o arbitrary_a arbitrary_a the_o prince_n duty_n delegate_v not_o arbitrary_a assign_v he_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o late_a to_o be_v his_o and_o say_v with_o the_o centurion_n mat._n 8.9_o i_o be_o under_o authority_n of_o claudus_n lisias_n he_o under_o faelix_fw-la he_o under_o the_o emperor_n he_o pro_fw-la deus_fw-la under_o god_n and_o so_o he_o be_v under_o authority_n also_o the_o heathen_a man_n say_v king_n be_v our_o country_n and_o over_o king_n be_v god_n be_v god_n viceroy_n they_o must_v rule_v as_o god_n will_v if_o he_o be_v on_o earth_n how_o be_v that_o even_o secundum_fw-la verbum_fw-la ejus_fw-la according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o word_n so_o must_v prince_n rule_v and_o numb_a 27.21_o because_o the_o prince_n have_v no_o perfect_a skill_n and_o deep_a cogitation_n in_o the_o word_n therefore_o this_o rule_n must_v be_v at_o the_o mouth_n of_o eleazar_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o duty_n the_o people_n duty_n answer_v to_o this_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o god_n deputy_n people_n 1._o duty_n of_o the_o people_n 1_o sam._n 10.26_o who_o heart_n god_n touch_v they_o be_v obedient_a obedience_n as_o principality_n be_v of_o god_n spirit_n mat._n 22.21_o by_o christ_n answer_n there_o it_o appear_v how_o he_o stand_v affect_v in_o his_o obedience_n unto_o caesar_n two_o sort_n of_o man_n be_v then_o in_o juda_n there_o be_v one_o theudas_n that_o make_v a_o insurrection_n for_o tribute_n that_o be_v command_v some_o there_o be_v that_o will_v not_o pay_v tribute_n and_o theudas_n captain_n of_o they_o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o to_o prove_v that_o no_o tribute_n must_v be_v pay_v on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v certain_a spiritus_fw-la aulici_fw-la court_n spirit_n herodian_o they_o will_v have_v every_o thing_n give_v to_o caesar_n even_o god_n part_n too_o and_o therefore_o they_o and_o the_o scribe_n ask_v christ_n tempt_v he_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o give_v tribute_n unto_o caesar_n or_o not_o to_o who_o he_o say_v not_o omne_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la all_o thing_n be_v not_o due_a to_o caesar_n but_o caesar_n have_v his_o quae_fw-la and_o god_n have_v his_o quae_fw-la so_o he_o go_v from_o theudas_n to_o obedience_n that_o be_v medium_n &_o mediocritas_fw-la the_o true_a mean_a prince_n 2._o duty_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o second_o duty_n be_v because_o god_n have_v deal_v so_o liberal_o with_o caesar_n as_o to_o make_v he_o his_o deputy_n quod_fw-la dicitur_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o creaturis_fw-la derivatur_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la in_o creaturas_fw-la that_o supremacy_n which_o god_n have_v over_o his_o creature_n he_o have_v derive_v and_o give_v to_o the_o creature_n so_o it_o come_v from_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v all_o himself_o alone_o if_o he_o have_v follow_v that_o which_o some_o worldly_a man_n say_v author_n alienae_n potentiae_fw-la aufert_fw-la de_fw-la sva_fw-la &_o perdit_fw-la svam_fw-la he_o that_o set_v up_o another_o pull_v down_o himself_o he_o have_v not_o bestow_v his_o dignity_n upon_o any_o but_o he_o impart_v of_o his_o honour_n to_o caesar_n now_o caesar_n must_v not_o requite_v he_o with_o break_v into_o that_o that_o be_v god_n alone_o for_o there_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o division_n quae_fw-la caesaris_fw-la quae_fw-la dei_fw-la caesar_n have_v he_o and_o god_n have_v he_o therefore_o he_o must_v let_v god_n have_v his_o own_o and_o so_o caesar_n must_v not_o dominari_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la bear_v rule_n over_o the_o conscience_n none_o but_o god_n keep_v court_n in_o conscientia_fw-la therefore_o he_o must_v not_o command_v a_o man_n against_o his_o allegiance_n in_o baptism_n that_o seal_v his_o conscience_n to_o god_n so_o he_o must_v not_o go_v against_o the_o word_n from_o which_o faith_n proceed_v i_o say_v that_o that_o be_v pay_v to_o caesar_n against_o the_o word_n be_v not_o caesaris_n vectigal_a but_o daemonis_fw-la not_o caesar_n but_o the_o devil_n toll_n so_o he_o know_v god_n glory_n to_o be_v his_o end_n he_o must_v be_v deut._n 16.17_o custos_fw-la legis_fw-la that_o be_v omnium_fw-la operum_fw-la legis_fw-la a_o keeper_n of_o
a_o small_a good_a to_o be_v praise_v without_o measure_n 2_o cor._n 12.6_o this_o bring_v a_o error_n to_o make_v man_n think_v otherwise_o of_o it_o than_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o good_a also_o that_o preach_v peace_n and_o salvation_n when_o there_o be_v none_o such_o or_o when_o contrary_a affection_n prov._n 27.14_o &_o 28.27_o both_o these_o be_v a_o curse_n for_o as_o love_n rejoice_v with_o truth_n 1_o cor._n 13.6_o so_o truth_n rejoice_v with_o love_n ephes_n 4.15_o therefore_o psal_n 12.3_o he_o wish_v they_o liplesse_a that_o speak_v thus_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o utter_v this_o venom_n that_o be_v in_o oratione_fw-la in_o his_o speech_n paul_n will_v please_v all_o 1_o cor._n 9.22_o sin_n set_v aside_o but_o without_o this_o condition_n none_o that_o please_v man_n please_v god_n gal._n 1.10_o those_o than_o that_o esa_n 28.15_o make_v falsehood_n their_o refuge_n love_v to_o speak_v thus_o so_o menander_n say_v he_o that_o flatter_v best_a fare_v best_a so_o they_o jer._n 9.3_o will_v bend_v their_o lip_n and_o teach_v their_o tongue_n to_o insinuate_v psal_n 141.5_o david_n will_v not_o be_v dull_v and_o mad_a himself_o with_o this_o so_o that_o we_o must_v not_o do_v thus_o but_o reprove_v with_o that_o warrant_n prov._n 9.8_o that_o the_o wise_a will_v hear_v we_o and_o prov._n 28.23_o to_o a_o fool_n at_o the_o last_o he_o that_o rebuke_v shall_v be_v the_o more_o the_o friend_n now_o for_o the_o actum_fw-la reflexum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la act_n which_o reflect_v upon_o itself_o 〈◊〉_d proptio_fw-la laus_fw-la sordet_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d as_o not_o only_o rom._n 1.18_o to_o suppress_v the_o truth_n in_o his_o conscience_n but_o also_o 2_o cor._n 12.1_o to_o glory_n and_o boast_v of_o himself_o paul_n speak_v therefore_o of_o himself_o as_o of_o another_o man_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o fall_v into_o this_o he_o have_v one_o to_o buffet_v he_o and_o therefore_o this_o be_v no_o light_a sin_n and_o because_o john_n 18.37_o only_o the_o truth_n can_v bear_v witness_n of_o itself_o there_o prov._n 27.2_o os_fw-la alienum_fw-la te_fw-la laudet_fw-la let_v another_o man_n praise_v thou_o and_o not_o thy_o own_o mouth_n and_o as_o this_o must_v be_v shun_v of_o all_o so_o especial_o of_o the_o prophet_n esa_n 9.15_o for_o job_n 13.7_o god_n need_v not_o our_o lie_n and_o this_o be_v only_o yea_o and_o not_o nay_o 2_o cor._n 1.19_o therefore_o rom._n 15.18_o the_o apostle_n dare_v speak_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o he_o know_v certain_o for_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o show_v that_o they_o have_v read_v or_o do_v know_v more_o than_o indeed_o they_o have_v also_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o a_o fault_n as_o where_o 1_o sam._n 31.4_o saul_n kill_v himself_o 2_o sam._n 1.10_o one_o come_v and_o say_v he_o kill_v he_o in_o hope_n of_o a_o reward_n also_o not_o to_o deny_v any_o thing_n of_o themselves_o as_o hierom_n mendax_fw-la humilitas_fw-la in_fw-la cauta_fw-la est_fw-la humilitas_fw-la ne_fw-la ita_fw-la caveatur_fw-la arrogantia_fw-la ut_fw-la caveatur_fw-la veritas_fw-la a_o lie_a humility_n be_v a_o uncircumspect_a humility_n we_o must_v not_o so_o labour_v to_o shun_v arrogancy_n as_o to_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o truth_n also_o though_o esa_n 3.9_o we_o may_v not_o voluntary_o tell_v our_o fault_n yet_o be_v ask_v we_o must_v not_o deny_v as_o do_v sarah_n gen._n 18.15_o no_o untruth_n must_v be_v affirm_v or_o truth_n deny_v of_o ourselves_o i●necuum_fw-la mendacium_fw-la i●necuum_fw-la now_o after_o this_o actus_fw-la reflexus_fw-la reflect_v act_n that_o all_o these_o which_o go_v before_o which_o be_v perniciosa_fw-la mendacia_fw-la mendacia_fw-la serpentis_fw-la pernicious_a lie_n the_o lie_v of_o the_o serpent_n his_o first_o word_n nequaquam_fw-la beside_o these_o there_o be_v mendacium_fw-la a_o lie_n which_o they_o call_v innocuum_fw-la harmless_a that_o of_o which_o come_v no_o loss_n but_o aug._n say_v those_o that_o say_v so_o be_v not_o innocui_fw-la innocent_a for_o it_o for_o though_o they_o account_v loss_n as_o of_o name_n of_o good_n of_o life_n and_o such_o like_a yet_o jer._n 23.22_o it_o be_v a_o error_n and_o therefore_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v worth_a all_o these_o these_o be_v in_o three_o temerartum_fw-la 1._o mendacium_fw-la temerartum_fw-la 1._o contra_fw-la quam_fw-la se_fw-la res_fw-la habet_fw-la otherways_o then_o the_o thing_n be_v though_o he_o be_v persuade_v of_o it_o in_o his_o mind_n which_o as_o aug._n say_v non_fw-la mendacii_fw-la sed_fw-la temeritatis_fw-la accusandus_fw-la est_fw-la he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o guilty_a of_o a_o lie_n as_o of_o rashness_n and_o temerity_n they_o which_o have_v not_o their_o tongue_n learned_a to_o say_v nescio_fw-la but_o speak_v thing_n they_o know_v not_o jud._n vers_fw-la 10._o officiosum_fw-la 2_o officiosum_fw-la 2._o contra_fw-la quam_fw-la se_fw-la animus_n habet_fw-la otherways_o than_o he_o think_v that_o of_o the_o midwife_n as_o they_o call_v it_o officiosum_fw-la mendacium_fw-la a_o officious_a lie_n exod._n 1.19_o 3._o jocosum_fw-la a_o merry_a lie_n as_o of_o scorner_n hose_n 7.3_o aug._n de_fw-fr mendacio_fw-la if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v sick_a jocosum_fw-la 3._o jocosum_fw-la and_o know_v that_o his_o son_n be_v dead_a which_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v he_o it_o will_v kill_v he_o also_o what_o shall_v i_o then_o answer_v if_o he_o ask_v i_o in_o such_o a_o case_n he_o know_v 2_o cor._n 13.8_o nihil_fw-la contra_fw-la veritatem_fw-la possumus_fw-la we_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n and_o psal_n 5.6_o perdes_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la mendacia_fw-la thou_o shall_v destroy_v all_o those_o that_o speak_v lie_n and_o as_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o the_o truth_n so_o the_o liar_n the_o be_v first_o bear_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v account_v peccatum_fw-la justum_fw-la sin_n to_o be_v just_a then_o and_o not_o else_o he_o may_v account_v mendacium_fw-la justum_fw-la a_o lie_n to_o be_v just_a so_o may_v he_o answer_v to_o they_o that_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o lie_v to_o bring_v one_o to_o the_o truth_n so_o it_o be_v as_o lawful_a to_o commit_v adultery_n for_o only_o the_o truth_n do_v command_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v so_o that_o neither_o for_o save_v of_o body_n or_o life_n we_o may_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v his_o conclusion_n which_o all_o the_o father_n and_o schoolman_n and_o late_a writer_n hold_v true_a and_o yet_o this_o may_v be_v better_o call_v rahab_n lie_v lie_n rahabs_n lie_n jos_n 2.5_o occultatio_fw-la veritatis_fw-la a_o hide_v of_o the_o truth_n then_o the_o lie_n of_o the_o midwife_n for_o they_o say_v true_a that_o some_o of_o the_o hebrew_n be_v strong_a than_o the_o egyptian_n and_o no_o doubt_n have_v do_v as_o they_o say_v so_o they_o tell_v no_o lie_n but_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o this_o may_v be_v allow_v in_o rahab_n have_v only_o a_o good_a disposition_n which_o none_o of_o the_o saint_n will_v have_v do_v and_o as_o for_o jocosum_fw-la the_o merry_a joy_n hose_n 7.3_o gal._n 1.10_o he_o will_v not_o please_v any_o man_n out_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o though_o this_o be_v less_o evil_a than_o the_o rest_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o good_a now_o see_v we_o be_v not_o to_o go_v against_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v four_o place_n where_o the_o truth_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v go_v against_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o so_o 1._o as_o judg._n 9.8_o and_o christ_n continual_o by_o a_o figurative_a speech_n that_o be_v vox_fw-la picta_fw-la a_o parable_n 2._o as_o abraham_n to_o ab●melech_n gen._n 20.12_o by_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n so_o 1_o sam._n 16.2.5_o samuel_n tell_v they_o he_o go_v to_o do_v sacrifice_n when_o he_o go_v also_o to_o anoint_v they_o a_o king_n which_o if_o he_o have_v tell_v saul_n have_v a_o evil_a spirit_n may_v have_v take_v it_o for_o treason_n 3._o if_o the_o question_n have_v two_o meaning_n if_o he_o answer_v to_o one_o so_o that_o be_v true_a john_n 18.36_o christ_n answer_v true_o of_o another_o kingdom_n than_o pilate_n ask_v he_o so_o jacob_n gen._n 27.19_o be_v in_o one_o sense_n isaack_n elder_a son_n in_o that_o he_o have_v buy_v his_o brother_n right_a so_o matth._n 11.14_o elias_n that_o be_v one_o in_o the_o power_n of_o elias_n 4._o when_o the_o thing_n be_v change_v in_o circumstance_n so_o gen._n 19.2_o the_o angel_n will_v not_o come_v in_o have_v not_o lot_n change_v their_o mind_n by_o his_o importunity_n john_n 13.8_o pete●_n will_v not_o let_v christ_n wash_v his_o foot_n till_o he_o be_v otherwise_o persuade_v 2_o cor._n 1.16_o 17._o paul_n promise_v to_o come_v to_o corinth_n have_v not_o satan_n hinder_v he_o so_o that_o all_o these_o be_v lawful_a and_o not_o against_o the_o truth_n facta_fw-la ●●●itas_fw-la est_fw-la ●●●ua●●●_n be_v p●●●_n
three_o have_v find_v the_o way_n we_o shall_v intrare_fw-la ingaudium_fw-la domini_fw-la enter_v into_o our_o master_n joy_n matth._n 25._o if_o we_o ask_v we_o shall_v have_v grace_n whereby_o it_o shall_v appear_v we_o have_v not_o receive_v our_o soul_n in_o vain_a psal_n 24._o second_o seek_v we_o shall_v find_v the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o receive_v grace_n in_o vain_a 2_o cor._n 6._o three_o by_o knock_v the_o way_n of_o entrance_n shall_v be_v open_v unto_o we_o so_o that_o our_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 15._o as_o aug._n say_v non_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quid_fw-la dabitur_fw-la christ_n name_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o you_o to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o that_o gift_n be_v a_o thing_n supra_fw-la omne_fw-la nomen_fw-la above_o all_o that_o can_v be_v name_v it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o gift_n as_o a_o earthly_a prince_n can_v give_v to_o promise_v half_a his_o king_n doom_n mark_v 6.23_o but_o god_n have_v promise_v not_o half_a his_o kingdom_n but_o all_o his_o kingdom_n we_o shall_v receive_v of_o god_n not_o only_o whatsoever_o we_o desire_v for_o desiderare_fw-la nostrum_fw-la as_o one_o say_v be_v not_o terminus_fw-la bonitatis_fw-la dei_fw-la our_o desire_n be_v not_o the_o limit_n or_o bound_n of_o god_n goodness_n but_o above_o all_o that_o we_o can_v ask_v or_o think_v ephes_n 3._o in_o the_o confidence_n of_o this_o promise_n the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o misery_n fly_v unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n as_o their_o only_a ready_a help_n in_o the_o day_n of_o enoch_n which_o be_v full_a of_o misery_n and_o trouble_n man_n begin_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 4.26_o and_o abraham_n in_o every_o place_n where_o he_o come_v be_v depart_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o live_v in_o exile_n build_v a_o altar_n and_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 12.8_o david_n say_v that_o his_o only_a remedy_n which_o he_o use_v against_o the_o slander_n and_o injury_n of_o his_o enemy_n stand_v herein_o that_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o prayer_n psal_n 109._o josaphat_n be_v besiege_v with_o enemy_n on_o every_o side_n use_v this_o as_o a_o bulwark_n against_o they_o lord_n we_o have_v no_o power_n to_o withstand_v this_o great_a company_n that_o be_v come_v against_o we_o and_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o our_o eye_n be_v towards_o thou_o 2_o chron._n 20._o the_o like_a comfort_n do_v ezechiah_n find_v in_o prayer_n both_o when_o senacherib_n threaten_v his_o destruction_n and_o in_o his_o sickness_n and_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o city_n of_o refuge_n whither_o the_o godly_a in_o all_o time_n have_v use_v to_o fly_v for_o safeguard_n from_o their_o misery_n it_o be_v rete_fw-la gratiarum_fw-la &_o situla_fw-la gratiae_fw-la the_o net_n of_o grace_n and_o bucket_n of_o grace_n prov._n 12.2_o by_o which_o a_o good_a man_n draw_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o special_a gift_n that_o we_o can_v desire_v of_o god_n be_v christ_n himself_o who_o be_v donum_fw-la illud_fw-la dei_fw-la john_n 4._o now_o forasmuch_o as_o indeed_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o great_a benefit_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v who_o do_v i_o desire_v in_o heaven_n but_o thou_o psal_n 73._o and_o philip_n say_v ostende_v nobis_fw-la patrem_fw-la &_o sufficit_fw-la show_v we_o the_o father_n and_o it_o be_v sufficient_a john_n 14._o we_o be_v to_o consider_v how_o we_o may_v come_v to_o it_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o the_o way_n john_n 14._o &_o ego_fw-la sum_fw-la ostium_fw-la john_n 10._o if_o he_o be_v both_o the_o way_n and_o the_o door_n than_o no_o doubt_n but_o if_o god_n bestow_v christ_n on_o we_o we_o shall_v both_o find_v the_o way_n to_o god_n and_o enter_v into_o his_o kingdom_n by_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o door_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o this_o gift_n we_o must_v be_v instant_a with_o god_n in_o prayer_n which_o if_o we_o do_v he_o will_v give_v we_o that_o we_o ask_v therefore_o augustine_n say_v domine_fw-la cupiote_n da_fw-la mihi_fw-la solumie_a out_o non_fw-fr dimittamte_fw-fr lord_n i_o desire_v thou_o give_v i_o thou_o alone_o or_o else_o i_o will_v not_o let_v thou_o go_v in_o the_o three_o place_n our_o saviour_n enlarge_v the_o promise_n lest_o we_o shall_v doubt_v that_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v all_o manner_n of_o person_n that_o pray_v to_o he_o or_o that_o he_o will_v not_o grant_v all_o our_o suit_n therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o person_n christ_n say_v quisquis_fw-la whosoever_o ask_v receive_v whosoever_o join_v these_o three_o virtue_n in_o their_o prayer_n confidence_n diligence_n perseverance_n and_o occupy_v all_o the_o part_n of_o their_o body_n in_o this_o service_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o receive_v the_o thing_n they_o ask_v for_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v only_o to_o they_o that_o perform_v god_n commandment_n petenti_fw-la dabitur_fw-la we_o must_v ask_v and_o we_o shall_v have_v it_o for_o god_n use_v not_o to_o cast_v holy_a thing_n upon_o they_o that_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o they_o matth._n 7._o touch_v the_o thing_n themselves_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n have_v say_v whatsoever_o you_o ask_v my_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o you_o john_n 16._o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v lie_v especial_o when_o he_o confirm_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n as_o in_o that_o place_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o you_o but_o we_o must_v take_v need_n what_o we_o ask_v we_o may_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ask_v without_o a_o cause_n if_o we_o ask_v any_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o will_n he_o hear_v we_o 1_o john_n 5._o therefore_o our_o prayer_n must_v be_v ground_v upon_o some_o just_a cause_n we_o may_v not_o ask_v any_o childish_a petition_n of_o god_n for_o he_o will_v revert_v they_o if_o we_o like_v child_n ask_v we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o can_v assure_v ourselves_o to_o be_v hear_v for_o unto_o such_o prayer_n he_o answer_v you_o ask_v you_o know_v not_o what_o matth._n 20._o much_o less_o will_v he_o grant_v hurtful_a petition_n as_o he_o be_v our_o physician_n he_o will_v not_o give_v we_o cold_a drink_n when_o we_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o ague_n though_o we_o cry_v for_o it_o never_o so_o much_o they_o that_o ask_v vengeance_n of_o god_n and_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v the_o executioner_n of_o their_o wrath_n shall_v not_o be_v hear_v prov._n 26.13_o but_o their_o prayer_n be_v turn_v to_o sin_n psal_n 109._o so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o the_o service_n of_o god_n if_o the_o child_n ask_v fish_n the_o father_n will_v not_o give_v he_o a_o scorpion_n no_o more_o will_v god_n hear_v we_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v of_o he_o if_o he_o know_v they_o will_v be_v hurtful_a he_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o know_v what_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o if_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v yet_o he_o as_o jerome_n say_v non_fw-la accipiendo_fw-la accepit_fw-la in_o not_o receive_v he_o have_v receive_v christ_n say_v not_o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o thing_n you_o ask_v but_o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o you_o desire_v we_o all_o desire_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a though_o outward_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discern_v what_o be_v good_a but_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n as_o he_o know_v best_a what_o be_v good_a for_o we_o so_o he_o will_v give_v we_o good_a thing_n though_o we_o be_v not_o able_a always_o to_o ask_v that_o which_o be_v good_a for_o ourselves_o second_o we_o must_v pray_v in_o such_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o he_o require_v god_n do_v hear_v we_o many_o time_n even_o quando_fw-la petimus_fw-la malum_fw-la in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v not_o give_v we_o the_o hurtful_a thing_n which_o we_o ignorant_o ask_v but_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v we_o cum_fw-la petimus_fw-la malè_fw-la you_o ask_v and_o receive_v not_o because_o you_o ask_v amiss_o jam._n 4._o therefore_o we_o must_v beware_v how_o we_o stand_v affect_v at_o the_o time_n of_o prayer_n if_o we_o pray_v cold_o without_o any_o great_a desire_n to_o attain_v the_o thing_n we_o ask_v we_o ask_v like_o swine_n that_o esteem_v not_o of_o pearl_n but_o trample_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n if_o we_o draw_v near_o with_o our_o lip_n but_o our_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o god_n esa_n 29._o then_o it_o be_v not_o like_a we_o shall_v be_v hear_v if_o we_o pray_v as_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o disciple_n who_o be_v heavy_a with_o sleep_n ask_v they_o
of_o timothy_n that_o he_o have_v crebras_fw-la infirmitates_fw-la 1_o tim._n 5._o so_o the_o soul_n also_o have_v certain_a infirmity_n and_o that_o be_v the_o infirinity_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v for_o albeit_o our_o soul_n be_v the_o strong_a part_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n indeed_o be_v strong_a matth._n 26._o yet_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n when_o it_o doubt_v of_o god_n mercy_n say_v will_v the_o lord_n absent_v himself_o for_o ever_o have_v god_n forget_v to_o be_v gracious_a which_o the_o prophet_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o his_o infirmity_n psal_n 77.10_o and_o as_o the_o spirit_n be_v weak_a so_o there_o be_v a_o weakness_n of_o conscience_n 1_o cor._n 8.7_o and_o no_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v such_o infirmity_n in_o the_o body_n also_o for_o life_n itself_o be_v but_o weak_a in_o regard_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v of_o god_n that_o hereby_o he_o be_v content_a to_o spare_v we_o for_o that_o he_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n psal_n 103._o and_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v but_o even_o as_o the_o wind_n that_o pass_v away_o psal_n 78._o the_o difference_n be_v that_o as_o christ_n say_v haec_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la joh._n 11._o and_o the_o dropsy_n palsy_n and_o such_o like_a disease_n and_o infirmity_n of_o body_n be_v not_o mortal_a the_o second_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v that_o howsoever_o we_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v compass_v with_o infirmity_n heb._n 5.5_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o past_a cure_n for_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n so_o that_o albeit_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o fall_v through_o weakness_n yet_o there_o be_v hope_n concern_v this_o thing_n esay_n 10.2_o and_o our_o error_n may_v be_v heal_v dan._n 4._o for_o there_o be_v balm_n in_o gilead_n jer._n 8._o which_o serve_v to_o cure_v all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n now_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o perform_v by_o any_o strength_n of_o our_o own_o nor_o by_o our_o own_o spirit_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o so_o long_o as_o our_o infirmity_n be_v but_o bodily_a the_o spirit_n of_o man_n will_v sustain_v they_o and_o there_o be_v help_v to_o be_v find_v but_o when_o the_o spirit_n itself_o be_v wound_v than_o who_o can_v help_v it_o prov._n 18._o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n must_v have_v help_n from_o a_o high_a thing_n than_o itself_o as_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o only_o be_v able_a to_o minister_v help_n the_o apostle_n ascribe_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n two_o benefit_n first_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v second_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o present_a life_n for_o the_o one_o as_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n assure_v we_o of_o our_o estate_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v namely_o that_o as_o god_n have_v adopt_v we_o to_o be_v his_o child_n so_o we_o shall_v be_v fellow-heire_n with_o his_o own_o son_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n touch_v the_o other_o because_o we_o be_v subject_a in_o this_o life_n to_o fall_v through_o infirmity_n we_o have_v this_o benefit_n from_o he_o that_o he_o stay_v and_o uphold_v we_o and_o therefore_o be_v call_v spiritus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o our_o infirmity_n be_v manifold_a whether_o we_o respect_v the_o body_n o●_n the_o soul_n so_o the_o weakness_n and_o defect_n of_o our_o soul_n appear_v not_o only_o in_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o can_v do_v because_o the_o flesh_n ever_o lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o we_o can_v do_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v gal._n 5._o but_o in_o evil_a thing_n which_o we_o shall_v bear_v and_o be_v not_o able_a the_o evil_a thing_n that_o we_o shall_v bear_v be_v not_o only_a affliction_n and_o the_o cross_n which_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o which_o the_o apostle_n prove_v to_o be_v more_o tolerable_a because_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v but_o dilatio_fw-la boni_fw-la wherein_o we_o need_v the_o virtue_n of_o magnanimity_n because_o it_o be_v a_o great_a cross_n as_o the_o wiseman_n say_v spes_fw-la quae_fw-la differtur_fw-la affligit_fw-la animam●_n prov._n 13._o touch_v which_o affliction_n and_o cross_n because_o in_o this_o life_n we_o can_v obtain_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n wish_v namely_o to_o fly_v away_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o dove_n that_o sow_n may_v be_v at_o rest_n psal_n 55._o therefore_o we_o must_v betake_v ourselves_o to_o the_o mourning_n of_o the_o dove_n esay_n 38._o wait_v patient_o when_o god_n will_v give_v we_o time_n to_o escape_v the_o mean_n and_o way_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n do_v help_v we_o be_v many_o but_o he_o only_o mean_v prayer_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v not_o esteem_v as_o it_o ought_v yet_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a prop_n and_o principal_a pillar_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v to_o strengthen_v our_o weakness_n therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n will_v that_o first_o of_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o king_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n 1_o tim._n 2._o the_o reason_n be_v as_o augustine_n note_v because_o both_o man_n salvation_n the_o honesty_n of_o life_n knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n quietness_n of_o kingdom_n duty_n of_o king_n and_o whatsoever_o tend_v to_o the_o public_a benefit_n come_v by_o and_o from_o prayer_n so_o that_o not_o only_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a matter_n but_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o temporal_a thing_n be_v stay_v upon_o the_o pillar_n of_o prayer_n wherefore_o as_o prayer_n be_v aspeciall_a help_n so_o we_o be_v not_o only_o exhort_v by_o religion_n to_o use_v it_o but_o nature_n itself_o bind_v we_o unto_o it_o for_o so_o long_o as_o we_o can_v either_o devise_v any_o help_n of_o ourselves_o or_o receive_v it_o from_o any_o other_o so_o long_o we_o lean_v upon_o our_o own_o staff_n but_o when_o all_o help_n fail_v than_o we_o fly_v to_o prayer_n as_o our_o last_o refuge_n and_o therefore_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o feed_v the_o raven_n that_o call_v upon_o he_o psal_n 147._o that_o cry_n of_o they_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o nature_n so_o that_o albeit_o man_n for_o a_o time_n lean_a to_o their_o stay_n and_o help_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o day_n when_o all_o flesh_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o come_v unto_o he_o who_o only_o it_o be_v that_o hear_v prayer_n psal_n 65._o that_o be_v when_o they_o lie_v howl_v upon_o their_o bed_n hos_fw-la 7._o then_o they_o shall_v be_v fain_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n for_o help_v so_o howsoever_o pharaoh_n in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n say_v who_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n exod._n 5._o yet_o he_o make_v he_o come_v to_o he_o when_o he_o plague_v he_o with_o thunder_a and_o rain_n and_o hail_n which_o make_v he_o send_v to_o moses_n and_o aaron_n that_o they_o may_v pray_v unto_o god_n for_o he_o exod._n 9.28_o but_o here_o the_o apostle_n mean_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o always_o reckon_v prayer_n to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a help_n in_o all_o trouble_n and_o not_o the_o last_o as_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v therefore_o as_o we_o must_v discern_v simulacra_fw-la virtutum_fw-la from_o virtue_n themselves_o and_o that_o which_o be_v natural_a from_o that_o which_o be_v of_o grace_n so_o we_o must_v distinguish_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o the_o carnal_a prayer_n and_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o virtue_n which_o we_o have_v if_o they_o be_v any_o be_v not_o natural_a as_o those_o in_o many_o of_o the_o heathen_a but_o that_o they_o proceed_v from_o grace_n and_o the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o the_o right_a frame_n of_o our_o prayer_n it_o be_v require_v that_o we_o do_v not_o only_a orare_fw-la ment_fw-la &_o spiritu_fw-la 1_o cor._n 14._o but_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v of_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n so_o we_o pray_v to_o god_n with_o understanding_n ps_n 47._o both_o our_o heart_n our_o understanding_n our_o affection_n must_v concur_v in_o make_v intercession_n to_o god_n for_o a_o second_o point_n if_o prayer_n be_v a_o stay_n to_o we_o in_o our_o infirmity_n than_o we_o must_v be_v careful_a that_o our_o prayer_n be_v not_o faint_a and_o weak_a but_o that_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o fervency_n and_o vehemency_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o as_o christ_n say_v if_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o be_v darkness_n how_o great_a be_v that_o darkness_n matth._n 6._o if_o our_o prayer_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o infirmity_n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n how_o great_a be_v our_o infirinity_n but_o the_o apostle_n show_v our_o weakness_n in_o prayer_n in_o
spirit_n of_o god_n will_v rest_v upon_o we_o as_o the_o lord_n promise_v esay_n 66._o for_o this_o end_n fast_v be_v commend_v to_o the_o church_n for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o use_n always_o among_o the_o faithful_a to_o humble_v their_o soul_n with_o fast_v psal_n 35._o second_o as_o we_o must_v pray_v in_o faith_n so_o we_o must_v also_o be_v charitable_o affect_v to_o our_o brethren_n first_o by_o forgive_a they_o if_o we_o will_v have_v forgiveness_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n mar._n 11.25_o second_o by_o give_v they_o that_o need_n this_o commend_a cornelius_n his_o prayer_n that_o he_o give_v alm_n act._n 10._o if_o our_o prayer_n be_v thus_o qualify_v we_o shall_v have_v god_n spirit_n to_o assist_v we_o in_o prayer_n who_o help_n if_o we_o obtain_v and_o unto_o our_o prayer_n add_v a_o patient_a expectation_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o haste_n to_o obtain_v the_o thing_n we_o crave_v but_o we_o wait_v upon_o god_n leisure_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v qui_fw-la crediderit_fw-la non_fw-la festinabit_fw-la esay_n 28._o he_o that_o believe_v make_v not_o haste_n thus_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o cast_v out_o our_o prayer_n the_o five_o sermon_n luke_n 11.1_o and_o so_o it_o be_v that_o as_o he_o be_v pray_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n when_o he_o cease_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n say_v unto_o he_o master_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v as_o john_n also_o teach_v his_o disciple_n which_o word_n do_v bring_v we_o to_o that_o form_n of_o invocation_n to_o which_o by_o degree_n we_o have_v be_v approach_v for_o first_o out_o of_o saint_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 3._o we_o learn_v that_o of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v not_o able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n much_o more_o unable_a to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a second_o from_o saint_n james_n that_o albeit_o we_o have_v no_o power_n in_o ourselves_o yet_o our_o want_n may_v be_v supply_v by_o the_o father_n of_o light_n three_o that_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v obtain_v this_o ability_n we_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o it_o by_o prayer_n as_o christ_n counsel_v petite_fw-fr &_o dabitur_fw-la vobis_fw-la but_o then_o we_o meet_v with_o another_o difficulty_n and_o that_o be_v as_o paul_n confess_v rom._n 8._o that_n albeit_o grace_n may_v be_v obtain_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n yet_o we_o know_v not_o how_o or_o what_o to_o ask_v except_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n supply_v our_o infirmity_n and_o therefore_o as_o then_o it_o be_v say_v that_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v intercession_n for_o we_o so_o here_o the_o same_o spirit_n do_v move_v the_o disciple_n to_o seek_v for_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n of_o christ_n whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o if_o we_o know_v not_o how_o or_o what_o to_o pray_v for_o our_o duty_n be_v to_o repair_v to_o christ_n with_o the_o disciple_n that_o he_o will_v direct_v we_o this_o text_n have_v two_o part_n first_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o apostle_n second_o christ_n answer_n thereunto_o vers_fw-la 2._o in_o the_o first_o part_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v first_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o petition_n second_o the_o petition_n itself_o domine_fw-la doce_fw-la nos_fw-la touch_v the_o first_o point_n the_o disciple_n take_v occasion_n of_o this_o petition_n from_o christ_n pray_v for_o see_v he_o not_o only_o pray_v now_o but_o at_o sundry_a other_o time_n present_o they_o conceive_v thus_o within_o themselves_o that_o doubtless_o prayer_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a inportance_n and_o a_o mean_n of_o no_o small_a benefit_n otherwise_o christ_n will_v never_o have_v pray_v so_o often_o before_o we_o consider_v two_o special_a motive_n to_o prayer_n the_o first_o be_v christ_n commandment_n the_o second_o christ_n promise_n matth._n 7.7_o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o and_o here_o again_o we_o have_v other_o two_o motive_n first_o the_o provocation_n of_o christ_n example_n who_o the_o disciple_n find_v pray_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n second_o the_o mould_n and_o set_v form_n of_o prayer_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o for_o our_o better_a direction_n in_o this_o duty_n say_v our_o father_n etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o first_o of_o these_o no_o doubt_n the_o example_n of_o holy_a man_n ought_v to_o move_v we_o to_o pray_v much_o more_o when_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n dan._n 9.24_o do_v by_o his_o own_o example_n stir_v we_o up_o hereunto_o king_n david_n when_o he_o have_v his_o crown_n pull_v off_o his_o head_n by_o his_o own_o son_n and_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n say_v to_o the_o priest_n if_o it_o please_v god_n he_o can_v bring_v i_o again_o and_o show_v i_o both_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o tabernacle_n 2_o sam._n 15.25_o declare_v hereby_o that_o he_o be_v more_o careful_a to_o have_v the_o liberty_n to_o come_v into_o the_o house_n of_o prayer_n to_o pour_v out_o his_o supplication_n before_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a then_o to_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o crown_n so_o great_a account_n do_v he_o make_v of_o prayer_n the_o like_a account_n do_v the_o holy_a prophet_n daniel_n make_v for_o when_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n it_o be_v proclaim_v that_o whosoever_o make_v any_o petition_n to_o god_n or_o man_n save_v only_o to_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v throw_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n he_o choose_v rather_o to_o adventure_v his_o life_n than_o not_o to_o pray_v dan._n 6._o whereby_o we_o may_v gather_v both_o how_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o also_o how_o necessary_a for_o we_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n and_o invocation_n be_v so_o that_o these_o example_n of_o these_o holy_a man_n aught_o to_o be_v of_o no_o small_a efficacy_n to_o persuade_v we_o hereunto_o and_o especial_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v great_a than_o either_o david_n or_o daniel_n of_o who_o it_o be_v report_v that_o he_o go_v into_o a_o solitary_a place_n alone_o not_o only_o in_o the_o morning_n mark_n 1._o but_o also_o in_o the_o evening_n joh._n 6._o not_o for_o a_o hour_n but_o to_o spend_v the_o whole_a night_n in_o prayer_n luk._n 6.12_o he_o pray_v not_o only_o in_o deserto_fw-la which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o distress_n but_o in_o horto_fw-la joh._n 18.2_o which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o pleasure_n as_o he_o pray_v when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o agony_n luk._n 22.46_o so_o also_o when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v make_v king_n joh._n 6._o to_o teach_v we_o that_o as_o well_o in_o prosperity_n as_o in_o adversity_n we_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v for_o hereunto_o our_o saviour_n do_v exhort_v we_o in_o plain_a word_n not_o only_o by_o precept_n matth._n 7._o luk._n 21.40_o pray_o that_o you_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n because_o prayer_n be_v a_o mean_a to_o keep_v we_o from_o evil_a both_o à_fw-la malo_fw-la culpae_fw-la &_o à_fw-la malo_fw-la poenae_fw-la as_o well_o from_o sin_n as_o from_o all_o manner_n of_o plague_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o sin_n as_o one_o say_v there_o will_v none_o adversity_n come_v upon_o we_o unless_o there_o be_v perversity_n in_o we_o but_o second_o by_o promise_n of_o reward_n pray_v unto_o your_o father_n in_o secret_a and_o he_o will_v reward_v you_o open_o matth._n 6.6_o we_o think_v it_o sufficient_a if_o earthly_a prince_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hearken_v to_o our_o prayer_n but_o god_n promise_v we_o more_o he_o will_v reward_v we_o for_o the_o same_o therefore_o see_v god_n both_o command_v we_o to_o pray_v and_o promise_v to_o grant_v we_o that_o we_o pray_v for_o see_v he_o do_v not_o only_o by_o his_o example_n teach_v we_o that_o prayer_n be_v requisite_a but_o prescribe_v we_o also_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v negligent_a in_o this_o duty_n beside_o out_o of_o this_o occasion_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v this_o that_o christ_n pray_v though_o he_o need_v nothing_o as_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n joh._n 1.16_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n without_o measure_n joh._n 3._o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o pray_v there_o be_v three_o use_n of_o prayer_n first_o there_o be_v a_o use_n of_o necessity_n for_o god_n have_v leave_v prayer_n to_o be_v our_o city_n of_o resuge_n to_o the_o end_n that_o when_o all_o mean_n fail_v we_o shall_v sly_a unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n in_o which_o regard_n the_o wise_a man_n say_v prov._n 18._o turris_n altissima_fw-la est_fw-la nomen_fw-la domini_fw-la but_o christian_n shall_v have_v a_o further_a use_n of_o this_o duty_n for_o unreasonable_a creature_n as_o lion_n and_o raven_n be_v provoke_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o necessity_n to_o call_v upon_o god_n second_o
concern_v who_o christ_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equal_a or_o like_v to_o the_o angel_n luk._n 20._o ought_v while_v we_o live_v on_o earth_n not_o speak_v only_o with_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n but_o of_o angel_n not_o only_o to_o confess_v our_o own_o want_n and_o to_o crave_v a_o supply_n from_o god_n but_o to_o acknowledge_v god_n riches_n goodness_n and_o power_n again_o the_o petition_n that_o we_o make_v for_o ourselves_o be_v a_o take_n and_o sanctification_n of_o his_o name_n by_o ascribe_v kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n unto_o god_n be_v a_o give_v and_o therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v a_o more_o bless_a thing_n to_o give_v then_o to_o receive_v act._n 29.35_o so_o the_o confession_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o power_n be_v a_o better_a confession_n then_o that_o which_o we_o make_v of_o our_o own_o weakness_n and_o poverty_n and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o god_n receive_v from_o we_o for_o the_o manifold_a benefit_n that_o we_o receive_v from_o he_o neither_o be_v this_o confession_n and_o acknowledgement_n leave_v to_o our_o own_o choice_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a but_o we_o must_v account_v of_o it_o as_o of_o a_o necessary_a duty_n which_o may_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v omit_v see_v god_n enter_v into_o covenant_n that_o he_o will_v hear_v we_o and_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o trouble_n when_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o psal_n 50._o therefore_o god_n challenge_v this_o a_o duty_n to_o himself_o by_o his_o servant_n ascribe_v unto_o the_o lord_n worship_n and_o strength_n give_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o glory_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n psal_n 29._o all_o nation_n who_o thou_o have_v make_v shall_v come_v and_o worship_v thou_o and_o glorify_v thy_o name_n psal_n 86.9_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n commend_v the_o samaritan_n because_o he_o return_v to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n for_o the_o benefit_n receive_v wherein_o he_o blame_v the_o other_o nine_o that_o be_v cleanse_v of_o their_o leprosy_n be_v not_o thankful_a to_o god_n in_o that_o behalf_n luk._n 17._o for_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n do_v hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o grant_v our_o petition_n that_o we_o shall_v glorify_v and_o honour_v his_o name_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v in_o these_o word_n for_o they_o be_v not_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o a_o astipulation_n but_o a_o allegation_n wherein_o as_o we_o acknowledge_v god_n goodness_n and_o power_n that_o have_v hear_v and_o grant_v our_o request_n so_o we_o allege_v reason_n why_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o hear_v we_o but_o also_o relieve_v and_o help_v we_o with_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o crave_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n we_o do_v not_o only_o say_v hear_v our_o petition_n for_o so_o shall_v thou_o show_v thyself_o to_o be_v a_o king_n but_o a_o mighty_a and_o glorious_a king_n and_o we_o for_o our_o part_n shall_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o but_o we_o use_v this_o confession_n as_o a_o reason_n why_o our_o former_a request_n be_v to_o be_v grant_v for_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v forgive_v thou_o our_o sin_n deliver_v thou_o we_o from_o evil_a hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v for_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n be_v thou_o and_o not_o we_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o will_v have_v our_o request_n grant_v be_v draw_v from_o god_n himself_o in_o two_o respect_n first_o that_o we_o may_v by_o this_o humble_a confession_n make_v ourselves_o capable_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o descend_v to_o any_o but_o those_o that_o be_v of_o a_o humble_a spirit_n for_o he_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a 1_o pet._n 5._o if_o we_o will_v have_v our_o desire_n grant_v because_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v good_a and_o gracious_a to_o be_v of_o power_n to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n we_o must_v desire_v he_o to_o be_v gracious_a propter_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la esay_n 43.25_o our_o motive_n unto_o god_n must_v be_v for_o thy_o love_a mercy_n and_o thy_o truth_n sake_n psalm_n 115.1_o help_v we_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o name_n deliver_v we_o be_v merciful_a unto_o our_o sin_n for_o thy_o name_n sake_n psal_n 79.9_o by_o these_o motive_n we_o must_v provoke_v and_o stir_v up_o god_n to_o hear_v we_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o prayer_n of_o profane_a man_n and_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heathen_a and_o profane_a man_n refer_v all_o to_o their_o own_o glory_n so_o say_v nabuchadnezzar_n be_v not_o this_o great_a babel_n which_o i_o have_v build_v by_o my_o great_a power_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o majesty_n dan._n 4.30_o such_o a_o man_n think_v himself_o to_o be_v absolute_a lord_n and_o will_v say_v who_o be_v the_o lord_n over_o we_o psal_n 12._o therefore_o be_v they_o call_v the_o son_n of_o beliall_a but_o the_o patriarch_n that_o be_v sanctify_v frame_v their_o prayer_n otherwise_o jacob_n acknowledge_v i_o be_o not_o worthy_a of_o the_o least_o of_o thy_o mercy_n gen._n 32._o by_o which_o humility_n he_o make_v himself_o capable_a of_o mercy_n to_o we_o belong_v shame_n say_v daniel_n chap._n 9_o but_o to_o thou_o belong_v compassion_n and_o forgiveness_n though_o we_o have_v offend_v so_o christ_n himself_o in_o this_o place_n do_v teach_v his_o disciple_n to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v give_v they_o the_o thing_n they_o desire_v not_o for_o any_o thing_n in_o themselves_o but_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n for_o thou_o be_v kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n whereby_o we_o perceive_v that_o humility_n be_v the_o mean_n to_o obtain_v at_o god_n hand_n our_o suit_n the_o other_o respect_n be_v in_o regard_n of_o god_n for_o he_o make_v his_o covenant_n with_o we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o we_o his_o people_n and_o when_o the_o prophet_n stir_v up_o the_o faithful_a to_o worship_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lord_n our_o maker_n he_o add_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n for_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o we_o be_v his_o people_n and_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n psal_n 95._o wherefore_o one_o say_v commemoratio_fw-la est_fw-la quaedam_fw-la necessitas_fw-la exaudiendi_fw-la nos_fw-la quia_fw-la nos_fw-la ipsius_fw-la sumus_fw-la ipse_fw-la noster_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v a_o necessary_a motive_n to_o god_n to_o hear_v we_o because_o we_o be_v his_o and_o he_o we_o therefore_o in_o all_o the_o prayer_n and_o psalm_n which_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n make_v they_o ground_n their_o petition_n upon_o this_o in_o regard_n of_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o creator_n they_o say_v we_o be_v thy_o workmanship_n create_v by_o thou_o therefore_o despise_v not_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o own_o hand_n psal_n 138._o beside_o we_o be_v the_o likeness_n of_o god_n image_n gen._n 1._o therefore_o suffer_v not_o thy_o own_o image_n to_o be_v deface_v in_o we_o but_o repair_v it_o second_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v the_o price_n of_o christ_n blood_n empti_fw-la estis_fw-la pretio_fw-la 1_o cor._n 6._o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o suffer_v not_o so_o great_a a_o price_n to_o be_v lose_v but_o deliver_v we_o and_o save_v we_o again_o we_o carry_v his_o name_n for_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n so_o we_o be_v of_o he_o call_v christian_n see_v therefore_o that_o his_o name_n be_v call_v upon_o we_o dan._n 9.19_o be_v gracious_a to_o we_o and_o grant_v our_o request_n three_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o breath_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o our_o nostril_n which_o be_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o god_n breathe_v in_o we_o at_o our_o creation_n gen._n 2.7_o again_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v to_o we_o a_o holy_a spirit_n and_o sanctifi_v we_o we_o be_v not_o only_a vaginae_fw-la spiritus_fw-la viventis_fw-la the_o sheath_n of_o the_o live_a spirit_n but_o templa_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 1_o corinth_n 6.19_o and_o therefore_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v to_o entreat_v he_o to_o be_v gracious_a to_o we_o we_o be_v god_n kingdom_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o seek_v our_o good_a all_o the_o world_n be_v his_o kingdom_n by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n but_o we_o that_o be_v his_o church_n be_v his_o kingdom_n by_o right_a of_o purchase_n we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o pet._n 2.9_o a_o people_n peculiar_a or_o get_v by_o purchase_n he_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tit._n 2.14_o a_o peculiar_a people_n and_o the_o price_n whereby_o we_o be_v purchase_v be_v his_o own_o blood_n 1_o pet._n 1
up_o in_o one_o night_n and_o be_v go_v in_o the_o next_o jon._n 4.6_o goodly_a zebedeus_n wife_n can_v find_v no_o less_o thing_n to_o ask_v of_o christ_n for_o her_o two_o son_n that_o come_v the_o last_o day_n from_o the_o cart_n but_o that_o the_o one_o may_v sit_v at_o christ_n right_a hand_n and_o the_o other_o at_o the_o leave_v in_o his_o kingdom_n matth._n 20.20_o balaam_n can_v never_o think_v his_o ass_n go_v half_a fast_o enough_o when_o he_o ride_v towards_o preferment_n num._n 22.17_o the_o disciple_n also_o long_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n to_o be_v restore_v the_o devil_n do_v not_o show_v all_o his_o kingdom_n to_o saul_n when_o he_o be_v come_v from_o keep_v his_o father_n sheep_n 1_o sam._n 9.24_o and_o samuel_n feast_v he_o nor_o after_o saul_n be_v choose_v king_n 1_o sam._n 11.5_o and_o he_o follow_v his_o cattle_n neither_o do_v he_o show_v they_o to_o the_o king_n bid_v to_o absalon_n sheep-shearing_n 2_o sam._n 13.24_o nor_o at_o such_o time_n as_o prince_n withdraw_v themselves_o to_o be_v private_a dan._n 6.18_o but_o he_o show_v they_o at_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o great_a glory_n and_o ruff_n when_o kingdom_n be_v grow_v to_o the_o top_n of_o jollity_n and_o majesty_n as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n be_v in_o solomon_n time_n and_o choose_v such_o a_o time_n as_o when_o they_o be_v in_o most_o triumph_n and_o pomp_n as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o king_n birth_n or_o inauguration_n hosea_n 7.5_o cant._n 3.11_o or_o at_o a_o coronation_n or_o at_o the_o receive_n of_o ambassador_n or_o at_o the_o entertain_n of_o foreign_a state_n as_o when_o the_o queen_n of_o saba_n be_v in_o solomon_n court_n 1_o king_n 10._o to_o conclude_v he_o show_v they_o not_o when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o base_a estate_n but_o when_o they_o be_v in_o great_a pomp_n act._n 25.23_o now_o come_v we_o to_o the_o second_o point_n to_o wit_n the_o temptation_n itself_o en_fw-fr haec_fw-la omne_fw-la tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la ver_fw-la 9_o have_v prepare_v christ_n mind_n as_o he_o think_v by_o show_v he_o that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o now_o he_o come_v in_o with_o a_o short_a and_o pithy_a oration_n all_o this_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o here_o thou_o see_v all_o thou_o can_v wish_v for_o without_o thou_o shall_v no_o man_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n or_o his_o foot_n in_o all_o egypt_n as_o pharaoh_n say_v to_o joseph_n gen._n 41.44_o so_o as_o he_o may_v make_v all_o captain_n and_o give_v to_o every_o one_o field_n and_o vineyard_n 1_o sam._n 22.7_o that_o he_o may_v say_v to_o every_o one_o what_o he_o listen_v speak_v thou_o to_o i_o see_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o have_v power_n to_o crucify_v thou_o or_o to_o let_v thou_o go_v john_n 19.10_o that_o his_o favour_n may_v raise_v a_o man_n so_o high_a as_o haman_n be_v exalt_v above_o all_o the_o prince_n hest_n 3.1_o and_o his_o disfavour_n or_o the_o least_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n quite_o overthrow_v he_o as_o haman_n be_v verse_n 7.8_o by_o pick_v some_o small_a quarrel_n against_o he_o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o neither_o for_o the_o same_o gayish_a apparel_n wherein_o many_o do_v delight_n be_v contain_v under_o this_o haec_fw-la omne_fw-la not_o only_o embroider_v with_o gold_n but_o even_o gold_n itself_o and_o smell_n of_o the_o fine_a scent_n psal_n 45.8_o 9_o and_o as_o for_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o he_o can_v see_v any_o that_o delight_v he_o better_o than_o other_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o with_o david_n 2_o sam._n 11.4_o to_o send_v for_o she_o and_o have_v she_o she_o be_v straight_o at_o his_o command_n neither_o must_v any_o say_v it_o be_v unlawful_a no_o not_o john_n baptist_n if_o he_o love_v his_o head_n mark_v 6.17_o he_o may_v command_v what_o he_o listen_v if_o any_o gainsay_v it_o he_o may_v dispatch_v he_o out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o he_o may_v kill_v and_o wound_n who_o he_o listen_v dan._n 5.19_o he_o may_v command_v all_o man_n tongue_n 2_o samuel_n 14.10_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o once_o open_v their_o mouth_n to_o speak_v against_o he_o nay_o he_o shall_v have_v all_o man_n tongue_n and_o pen_n ready_a to_o extol_v all_o that_o he_o do_v and_o say_v the_o king_n be_v like_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n 2_o sam._n 19_o or_o that_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n act._n 12.22_o why_o then_o to_o have_v all_o man_n hand_n foot_n body_n face_n tongue_n and_o pen_n this_o may_v be_v well_o say_v all_o to_o have_v not_o only_o one_o kingdom_n but_o all_o to_o have_v all_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o those_o kingdom_n here_o be_v even_o all_o the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n he_o come_v not_o after_o a_o pelt_a manner_n he_o show_v himself_o a_o frank_a chapman_n he_o say_v not_o that_o godliness_n be_v great_a gain_n and_o a_o mind_n content_a with_o his_o lot_n 1_o tim._n 6.6_o and_o will_v he_o to_o be_v content_a with_o food_n and_o raiment_n ver_fw-la 8._o he_o come_v not_o with_o illa_fw-la which_o we_o shall_v not_o once_o behold_v till_o another_o world_n come_v and_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o or_o no_o many_o doubt_n he_o show_v he_o a_o mount_n that_o may_v be_v touch_v heb._n 12.18_o he_o come_v with_o haec_fw-la that_o be_v with_o ready_a money_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o not_o only_o offer_v but_o stake_v down_o and_o whereas_o god_n say_v that_o in_o the_o sweat_n of_o our_o forehead_n we_o shall_v eat_v our_o bread_n gen._n 3.19_o the_o devil_n require_v no_o such_o thing_n this_o be_v a_o donative_n haec_fw-la amnia_fw-la dabo_fw-la what_o say_v you_o now_o shall_v christ_n take_v it_o or_o no_o the_o heathen_a man_n say_v if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o violate_v his_o faith_n for_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o a_o kingdom_n christ_n have_v here_o offer_v he_o all_o kingdom_n a_o very_a entice_a bait_n but_o be_v there_o never_o a_o hook_n hide_v under_o it_o the_o woman_n be_v fine_a and_o brave_a and_o have_v a_o cup_n of_o gold_n in_o her_o hand_n but_o it_o be_v full_a of_o abomination_n apoc._n 17.14_o so_o here_o for_o all_o these_o fair_a show_n if_o you_o will_v gain_v any_o thing_n by_o the_o devil_n you_o must_v worship_v he_o that_o be_v the_o condition_n annex_v to_o the_o grant_n it_o be_v no_o absolute_a gift_n the_o devil_n be_v not_o so_o kind_a as_o to_o part_v from_o all_o that_o for_o nothing_o it_o be_v such_o a_o gift_n as_o the_o lawyer_n call_v excambium_fw-la that_o be_v exchange_n i_o will_v give_v you_o this_o if_o you_o will_v give_v i_o that_o but_o yet_o one_o will_v think_v it_o a_o very_a large_a offer_n to_o give_v so_o great_a a_o lieu_n for_o so_o small_a a_o service_n it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a external_a reverence_n the_o bow_v of_o the_o knee_n you_o may_v notwithstanding_o in_o heart_n think_v what_o you_o listen_v well_o we_o may_v think_v there_o be_v somewhat_o in_o it_o that_o the_o devil_n offer_v so_o much_o for_o so_o little_a and_o yet_o christ_n refuse_v it_o indeed_o christ_n have_v great_a reason_n to_o refuse_v it_o for_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o loser_n by_o the_o bargain_n i_o will_v stand_v to_o it_o he_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v yield_v to_o either_o of_o the_o two_o former_a temptation_n than_o to_o this_o he_o shall_v full_o dear_o have_v buy_v all_o his_o kingdom_n he_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v cast_v himself_o down_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n for_o that_o which_o the_o devil_n here_o demand_v in_o lieu_n be_v as_o much_o worth_n as_o both_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n of_o his_o glory_n god_n say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o give_v it_o to_o another_o esay_n 42.8_o if_o to_o no_o other_o than_o not_o to_o the_o devil_n of_o all_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n will_v not_o have_v a_o burn_a offering_n offer_v to_o he_o but_o to_o god_n judg._n 13.16_o the_o angel_n will_v not_o let_v john_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o but_o bid_v he_o worship_n god_n rev._n 19.10_o for_o he_o know_v that_o god_n be_v very_o jealous_a of_o his_o honour_n and_o stand_v precise_o upon_o that_o point_n if_o he_o will_v not_o impart_v this_o honour_n with_o the_o angel_n much_o less_o will_v he_o with_o the_o devil_n for_o there_o be_v degree_n in_o idolatry_n rom._n 1.23_o it_o be_v not_o so_o ill_a to_o turn_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n as_o into_o bird_n and_o beast_n second_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o desire_n that_o he_o have_v to_o satisfy_v his_o ancient_a envy_n by_o the_o destruction_n of_o mankind_n we_o must_v needs_o commend_v the_o
he_o get_v thou_o hence_o behind_o i_o satan_n for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n &_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v then_o the_o devil_n leave_v he_o and_o behold_v the_o angel_n come_v and_o minister_v unto_o he_o the_o answer_v of_o this_o temptation_n if_o some_o have_v have_v the_o answer_v of_o it_o will_v have_v be_v facto_fw-la by_o the_o do_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o the_o devil_n require_v and_o not_o in_o word_n stand_v upon_o term_n in_o disputation_n insomuch_o as_o they_o will_v never_o have_v care_v for_o a_o cushion_n to_o kneel_v on_o but_o have_v fall_v down_o straight_o on_o their_o very_a face_n and_o have_v thank_v he_o too_o if_o balaak_n shall_v say_v unto_o one_o of_o they_o i_o will_v promote_v thou_o to_o great_a honour_n numb_a 22.17_o a_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n shall_v not_o hinder_v he_o from_o go_v the_o manner_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v in_o case_n of_o preferment_n to_o respect_v nothing_o that_o may_v bring_v they_o out_o of_o their_o conceive_a hope_n or_o desire_v thereof_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n be_v it_o never_o so_o holy_a down_o it_o shall_v for_o haste_n to_o make_v the_o way_n near_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o one_o brother_n respect_v not_o another_o when_o joseph_n have_v have_v a_o dream_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o tell_v it_o they_o all_o brotherly_a affection_n be_v lay_v aside_o gen._n 37.5_o the_o son_n and_o subject_n absalon_n forget_v his_o duty_n as_o to_o his_o father_n and_o allegiance_n as_o to_o his_o prince_n seek_v his_o life_n 2_o sam._n 16.11_o the_o mother_n of_o ahaziah_n athalia_fw-la when_o she_o see_v her_o son_n dead_a make_v no_o more_o ado_n but_o destroy_v all_o the_o king_n seed_n 2_o king_n 11.1_o jehu_n make_v no_o bone_n nor_o be_v abash_v at_o the_o sight_n of_o heap_n of_o dead_a man_n head_n of_o king_n son_n that_o he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v slay_v but_o add_v more_o murder_n to_o they_o 2_o kin._n 10.8_o what_o be_v a_o basketfull_a of_o head_n to_o a_o kingdom_n and_o herod_n stack_n not_o to_o kill_v all_o the_o male-borne_a child_n in_o bethlem_n matth._n 2.16_o so_o that_o gregory_n may_v well_o say_v ambitio_fw-la est_fw-la vita_fw-la cvi_fw-la etiam_fw-la innocent_n nocent_a such_o be_v the_o vehement_a desire_n of_o a_o kingdom_n so_o that_o a_o great_a many_o will_v have_v make_v no_o scruple_n at_o the_o matter_n neither_o will_v they_o have_v count_v it_o a_o temptation_n but_o good_a counsel_n neither_o will_v so_o have_v cut_v up_o peter_n as_o christ_n do_v to_o bid_v he_o go_v behind_o he_o and_o turn_v their_o back_n on_o he_o but_o they_o will_v rather_o have_v turn_v their_o back_n to_o god_n and_o their_o face_n after_o satan_n jer._n 2.27_o 1_o tim._n 5.15_o and_o indeed_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o either_o our_o saviour_n be_v unwise_a in_o refuse_v so_o good_a a_o offer_n or_o else_o the_o world_n in_o these_o day_n be_v in_o a_o wrong_a bias_n our_o saviour_n we_o see_v do_v not_o only_o refuse_v the_o thing_n but_o also_o give_v he_o hard_a word_n for_o make_v the_o offer_n and_o motion_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o confute_v he_o here_o by_o say_v scriptum_n est_fw-la but_o he_o add_v word_n of_o bitter_a reprehension_n say_v avoid_v satan_n he_o may_v have_v give_v fair_a word_n as_o he_o do_v before_o but_o here_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v leave_v his_o patience_n the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v more_o hot_a in_o this_o than_o in_o the_o former_a be_v for_o that_o this_o touch_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n the_o former_a temptation_n touch_v but_o himself_o in_o particular_a as_o the_o turn_n of_o stone_n into_o bread_n but_o for_o miracle_n and_o the_o cast_v himself_o down_o be_v but_o to_o try_v god_n what_o care_v he_o have_v of_o he_o but_o this_o so_o much_o touch_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o he_o can_v hold_v no_o long_o also_o his_o longing_n to_o redeem_v man_n cause_v the_o same_o neither_o do_v he_o only_o answer_v the_o devil_n so_o but_o when_o his_o bless_a apostle_n who_o mean_v friendly_a to_o he_o move_v he_o to_o the_o like_a matter_n he_o rebuke_v he_o sharp_o two_o cause_n there_o be_v wherein_o christ_n be_v very_o earnest_a one_o in_o counsel_n minister_v to_o he_o tend_v to_o the_o impair_n of_o god_n glory_n the_o other_o in_o practice_n tend_v to_o the_o impair_n of_o god_n church_n joh._n 2.15_o there_o he_o be_v not_o only_o vehement_a in_o word_n but_o make_v a_o whip_n to_o scourge_v they_o out_o and_o so_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o be_v say_v of_o moses_n numb_a 12.3_o that_o he_o be_v a_o meek_a man_n above_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o when_o he_o come_v to_o a_o case_n of_o idolatry_n exod._n 32.19_o it_o be_v say_v he_o throw_v the_o table_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o break_v they_o and_o so_o far_o do_v he_o lose_v his_o natural_a affection_n to_o his_o people_n and_o countryman_n that_o he_o cause_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o to_o be_v slay_v and_o so_o in_o a_o case_n of_o the_o church_n when_o corah_n rebel_v numb_a 16.15_o then_o moses_n wax_v very_o angry_a for_o glory_n be_v to_o god_n on_o high_a and_o peace_n on_o earth_n be_v the_o angel_n song_n and_o joy_n and_o the_o devil_n grief_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o dissension_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o devil_n joy_n and_o grief_n of_o the_o angel_n now_o beside_o that_o he_o do_v in_o word_n rebuke_v he_o sharp_o he_o do_v no_o less_o in_o gesture_n also_o as_o by_o turn_v his_o back_n upon_o he_o as_o it_o be_v most_o like_a he_o do_v in_o say_v avoid_v satan_n which_o be_v such_o a_o despiteful_a disgrace_n as_o if_o that_o one_o shall_v offer_v we_o the_o like_a we_o will_v take_v it_o in_o very_o great_a disdain_n which_o be_v to_o we_o a_o instruction_n that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o we_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o devil_n before_o we_o and_o to_o have_v our_o eye_n still_o upon_o he_o and_o his_o weapon_n or_o temptation_n for_o fear_v lest_o unaware_o he_o may_v do_v we_o some_o hurt_n so_o be_v there_o a_o place_n a_o time_n and_o a_o sin_n that_o we_o be_v to_o turn_v our_o back_n on_o and_o not_o once_o to_o look_v at_o his_o temptation_n in_o affliction_n patience_n be_v to_o be_v try_v there_o resist_v the_o devil_n stand_v to_o he_o and_o he_o will_v fly_v from_o you_o jam._n 4.7_o here_o we_o be_v to_o set_v the_o devil_n before_o we_o but_o in_o a_o case_n of_o lust_n or_o filthy_a desire_n then_o do_v you_o fly_v from_o he_o 1_o cor._n 6.18_o so_o in_o 2_o tim._n 2.22_o we_o be_v exhort_v to_o fly_v from_o the_o lust_n of_o youth_n and_o to_o follow_v justice_n there_o be_v no_o stand_v to_o gaze_v back_o on_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o temptation_n now_o to_o the_o answer_n scriptum_n est_fw-la the_o dispute_v or_o decide_v of_o the_o devil_n title_n that_o be_v whether_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v he_o to_o give_v or_o no_o christ_n stand_v not_o upon_o nor_o upon_o this_o whether_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o man_n of_o his_o word_n or_o no._n indeed_o it_o may_v well_o have_v be_v doubt_v whether_o the_o devil_n be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n his_o promise_n be_v not_o yea_o and_o amen_o as_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v we_o may_v take_v example_n by_o eve_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v that_o if_o they_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v like_a god_n but_o be_v they_o so_o indeed_o after_o they_o have_v eat_v no_o but_o like_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v and_o as_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v he_o if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n have_v be_v at_o his_o disposition_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a david_n shall_v never_o have_v be_v king_n as_o well_o appear_v by_o the_o trouble_v he_o raise_v against_o he_o no_o nor_o hezechias_n neither_o of_o all_o other_o he_o will_v never_o choose_v such_o we_o may_v see_v his_o good_a will_n in_o job_n chap._n 2.7_o he_o can_v not_o only_o be_v content_a to_o spoil_v he_o of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v but_o also_o he_o must_v afflict_v his_o body_n and_o so_o upon_o the_o gergasen_n hog_n matth._n 8.30_o the_o kingdom_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o they_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o dispose_v as_o himself_o say_v luk._n 4.6_o he_o have_v as_o it_o be_v a_o advowson_n of_o they_o to_o present_v unto_o they_o but_o yet_o not_o as_o he_o there_o say_v to_o give_v to_o who_o he_o listen_v but_o to_o
who_o he_o be_v permit_v god_n must_v first_o put_v all_o that_o job_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n or_o else_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o abimelech_n judg._n 9_o and_o herod_n matth._n 2._o come_v to_o their_o kingdom_n by_o the_o devil_n patent_n they_o be_v the_o devil_n officer_n so_o we_o see_v daily_o in_o our_o day_n that_o he_o bestow_v office_n and_o present_v to_o church_n so_o that_o as_o brentius_n say_v many_o have_v panem_fw-la quotidianum_fw-la that_o can_v come_v by_o dam_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o come_v not_o to_o it_o by_o god_n gift_n yet_o all_o the_o interest_n that_o the_o devil_n have_v be_v but_o to_o present_v pro_fw-la hac_fw-la vita_fw-la tantum_fw-la as_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v true_a that_o in_o some_o sort_n they_o may_v be_v give_v he_o so_o yet_o not_o to_o dispose_v as_o he_o will_n it_o be_v god_n only_o that_o can_v say_v so_o for_o his_o only_o they_o be_v absolute_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o the_o round_a world_n and_o all_o that_o dwell_v therein_o psal_n 24.1_o it_o be_v he_o the_o most_o high_a god_n that_o divide_v to_o the_o nation_n their_o inheritance_n deut._n 32.8_o by_o he_o king_n reign_v and_o prince_n have_v dominion_n prov._n 8.15_o he_o bring_v nabuchadnezzar_n to_o know_v that_o the_o most_o high_a god_n bare_a rule_n over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n dan._n 5.21_o he_o indeed_o may_v well_o say_v cui_fw-la voluero_fw-la do_v ea_fw-la and_o to_o whosoever_o god_n give_v he_o give_v liberal_o and_o reproach_v no_o man_n jam._n 1.5_o the_o devil_n we_o see_v exact_v more_o than_o the_o thing_n be_v worth_a and_o strain_v the_o benefit_n of_o his_o grant_n with_o unjust_a convenant_n but_o christ_n go_v not_o about_o to_o answer_v the_o devil_n that_o way_n but_o by_o fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o his_o sure_a hold_n therefore_o david_n pray_v that_o his_o mind_n may_v be_v incline_v to_o god_n law_n and_o not_o to_o covetousness_n psal_n 119.36_o for_o there_o be_v a_o medicine_n for_o every_o disease_n and_o power_n as_o well_o against_o this_o temptation_n of_o covetousness_n as_o against_o the_o former_a the_o law_n of_o god_n can_v as_o well_o keep_v a_o man_n from_o covetousness_n as_o from_o desperation_n heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o no_o one_o jot_n of_o this_o let_v therefore_o haec_fw-la omne_fw-la give_v place_n to_o scriptum_n est_fw-la marry_o omnia_fw-la illa_fw-la which_o both_o we_o now_o enjoy_v and_o which_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o we_o hereafter_o be_v come_v to_o by_o scriptum_n est_fw-fr so_o that_o omnia_fw-la haec_fw-la be_v not_o all_o we_o must_v care_v for_o there_o be_v thing_n to_o come_v beside_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o lay_v hand_n on_o far_o more_o precious_a though_o here_o be_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v show_v in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n so_o can_v the_o other_o kingdom_n of_o exceed_a glory_n all_o the_o power_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n on_o the_o earth_n have_v not_o power_n over_o one_o silly_a soul_n to_o destroy_v it_o matth._n 10.28_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o be_v call_v but_o a_o great_a big_a fan_n or_o pomp_n act._n 25.23_o solomon_n be_v the_o most_o glorious_a prince_n that_o ever_o be_v yet_o he_o be_v not_o clothe_v like_o a_o lily_n matth._n 6.29_o nor_o all_o the_o lily_n in_o the_o field_n nor_o star_n in_o heaven_n nor_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n itself_o be_v comparable_a to_o one_o soul_n the_o scripture_n whereby_o christ_n answer_v the_o devil_n be_v in_o deut._n 16.13_o thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o if_o any_o fantastical_a spirit_n oppose_v itself_o against_o moses_n let_v it_o be_v accurse_v there_o be_v in_o this_o answer_n two_o thing_n set_v down_o worship_n and_o service_n both_o which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o covetousness_n end_v in_o idolatry_n and_o fit_o be_v so_o term_v if_o christ_n have_v be_v covetous_o mind_v than_o he_o must_v needs_o have_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v the_o devil_n for_o covetousness_n and_o idolatry_n be_v join_v together_o we_o will_v not_o have_v part_v from_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n christ_n have_v here_o change_v a_o word_n which_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la translator_n have_v which_o signifi_v a_o service_n with_o a_o open_a testimony_n so_o that_o will_v you_o know_v if_o a_o man_n do_v believe_v he_o believe_v unto_o righteousness_n with_o the_o heart_n that_o with_o the_o mouth_n confess_v to_o salvation_n rom._n 10.10_o such_o as_o glorify_v god_n as_o well_o in_o their_o member_n as_o in_o their_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 6.20_o as_o saint_n james_n say_v of_o faith_n show_v i_o thy_o faith_n by_o thy_o work_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o fear_n you_o say_v you_o have_v fear_n can_v you_o show_v i_o your_o fear_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o dead_a fear_n it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v as_o dan._n 3.5_o it_o must_v be_v show_v by_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v the_o servant_n that_o fear_v fall_v down_o and_o beseech_v his_o master_n matth._n 18.26_o do_v you_o fear_v then_o where_o be_v the_o outward_a reverence_n the_o inward_a affection_n must_v appear_v by_o the_o outward_a action_n religion_n be_v outward_a as_o well_o as_o inward_a 1_o king_n 19.18_o there_o be_v two_o way_n whereby_o we_o may_v have_v traffic_n with_o the_o devil_n either_o of_o both_o will_v serve_v his_o turn_n first_o homage_n second_o service_n of_o the_o body_n and_o both_o these_o do_v god_n require_v even_o when_o we_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a or_o in_o our_o chamber_n ezech._n 8.12_o indeed_o may_v the_o devil_n say_v this_o mountain_n be_v very_o open_a but_o how_o say_v you_o will_v you_o be_v content_a close_o in_o a_o corner_n to_o worship_v i_o if_o you_o will_v not_o wear_v my_o cognisance_n on_o your_o forehead_n yet_o you_o may_v take_v my_o mark_n in_o your_o hand_n then_o shut_v your_o hand_n no_o body_n can_v perceive_v it_o if_o you_o will_v not_o take_v the_o mark_n yet_o take_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n name_n that_o be_v six_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o six_o apoc._n 13.17_o 18._o will_v you_o do_v none_o of_o these_o what_o then_o will_v you_o serve_v i_o rom._n 16.18_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o glorious_a term_n he_o use_v but_o if_o one_o shall_v seem_v to_o do_v one_o of_o these_o on_o courtesy_n he_o will_v not_o be_v content_a till_o he_o do_v it_o of_o duty_n now_o let_v we_o see_v first_o what_o it_o be_v to_o worship_n it_o be_v that_o which_o cornelius_n do_v to_o peter_n he_o meet_v he_o fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o worship_v he_o act._n 10.25_o and_o that_o which_o john_n do_v to_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v he_o fall_v down_o before_o his_o foot_n to_o worship_v he_o apoc._n 19.10_o it_o be_v when_o one_o on_o the_o knee_n do_v a_o bodily_a worship_n i_o will_v show_v it_o you_o in_o david_n word_n for_o i_o can_v tell_v it_o you_o better_o when_o michol_n scoff_v at_o david_n for_o be_v bareheaded_a before_o the_o ark_n he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v more_o vile_a than_o thus_o and_o will_v be_v low_a in_o my_o own_o sight_n 2_o sam._n 6.22_o a_o man_n can_v never_o be_v too_o reverend_a to_o god_n we_o think_v it_o a_o great_a disgrace_n and_o debase_v of_o ourselves_o if_o we_o use_v any_o bodily_a worship_n to_o god_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v to_o he_o that_o fear_v to_o do_v too_o much_o reverence_n to_o caesar_n hic_fw-la homo_fw-la timet_fw-la timere_fw-la caesarem_fw-la our_o religion_n and_o cultus_fw-la must_v be_v uncover_v and_o a_o bare-faced_n religion_n we_o will_v not_o use_v to_o come_v before_o a_o mean_a prince_n as_o we_o do_v before_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n even_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o before_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o worship_v he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o cast_v their_o crown_n before_o his_o throne_n the_o wander_a eye_n must_v learn_v to_o be_v fasten_v on_o he_o luke_n 4.20_o and_o the_o work_n of_o justice_n and_o peace_n esa_n 32.17_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o knee_n to_o bow_v ephes_n 3.14_o and_o kneel_v before_o the_o lord_n their_o maker_n psal_n 95.6_o our_o foot_n be_v to_o come_v before_o his_o face_n for_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o great_a god_n and_o a_o great_a king_n above_o all_o god_n psa_n 95.2_o 3._o jacob_n though_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v or_o kneel_v yet_o because_o he_o will_v use_v some_o corporal_a service_n lean_v upon_o his_o staff_n and_o worship_v god_n as_o appear_v gen._n 49.33_o and_o heb._n 11.21_o this_o must_v be_v do_v as_o duty_n due_a unto_o